Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n apostle_n bishop_n evangelist_n 4,208 5 10.0866 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A70760 Bishop Overall's convocation-book, MDCVI concerning the government of God's catholick church, and the kingdoms of the whole world.; Bishop Overall's convocation book Overall, John, 1560-1619.; Sancroft, William, 1617-1693. 1690 (1690) Wing O607; ESTC R2082 200,463 346

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

before_o his_o ascension_n enlarge_n their_o commission_n do_v commit_v unto_o his_o apostle_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o short_o after_o furnish_v not_o only_o they_o but_o the_o say_a disciple_n also_o according_a to_o their_o several_a function_n most_o abundant_o with_o all_o such_o gift_n and_o heavenly_a grace_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o in_o those_o great_a affair_n which_o be_v impose_v upon_o they_o whereby_o we_o find_v already_o two_o complete_a degree_n of_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n ordain_v by_o christ_n himself_o immediate_o viz._n his_o 12._o apostle_n and_o his_o 70._o disciple_n the_o one_o in_o dignity_n and_o authority_n above_o the_o other_o the_o disciple_n in_o that_o respect_n be_v term_v secondary_a apostle_n and_o be_v the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v most_o probable_o hold_v who_o be_v afterward_o call_v evangelist_n we_o will_v not_o intermeddle_v with_o the_o prophet_n in_o those_o time_n of_o who_o the_o scripture_n make_v mention_v because_o divers_a of_o they_o be_v no_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n of_o who_o only_o we_o have_v here_o take_v upon_o we_o to_o entreat_v leave_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o say_v 70._o disciple_n or_o evangelist_n as_o before_o they_o have_v be_v assistant_n unto_o christ_n so_o now_o to_o be_v direct_v by_o his_o apostle_n touch_v who_o bless_v call_v it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o end_n of_o it_o be_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v only_o for_o their_o own_o time_n by_o preach_v the_o word_n administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o likewise_o by_o their_o authority_n of_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n draw_v many_o to_o the_o embrace_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o afterward_o to_o rule_v and_o order_v they_o as_o that_o they_o may_v not_o easy_o be_v draw_v again_o from_o it_o but_o be_v in_o like_a sort_n to_o provide_v for_o a_o succession_n in_o their_o ministry_n of_o fit_a person_n sufficient_o authorize_v by_o they_o to_o undertake_v that_o charge_n and_o as_o well_o to_o yield_v some_o further_a assistance_n unto_o they_o whilst_o they_o themselves_o live_v as_o afterward_o also_o both_o to_o continue_v the_o same_o in_o their_o own_o person_n unto_o their_o life_n end_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n to_o ordain_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n give_v unto_o they_o other_o minister_n to_o succeed_v themselves_o that_o so_o the_o say_v apostolical_a authority_n be_v derive_v in_o that_o sort_n from_o one_o to_o another_o there_o may_v never_o be_v any_o want_n of_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o say_a apostle_n and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v evident_a what_o it_o be_v which_o they_o do_v communicate_v unto_o the_o ministry_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o some_o thing_n in_o the_o apostle_n be_v essential_a and_o perpetual_a and_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o their_o ministry_n contain_v the_o three_o essential_a part_n before_o mention_v of_o preach_v administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o that_o some_o be_v but_o personal_a and_o temporary_a grant_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o better_a strengthen_n and_o approve_v of_o the_o say_a ministry_n with_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o there_o be_v then_o many_o difficulty_n and_o impediment_n which_o do_v many_o way_n hinder_v the_o first_o preach_v and_o plantation_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o say_v personal_a or_o temporary_a gift_n or_o prerogative_n these_o may_v be_v account_v the_o chief_a 1._o that_o they_o be_v call_v immediate_o by_o chirst_n himself_o to_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a faith_n among_o the_o gentile_n 2._o that_o their_o commission_n to_o that_o purpose_n be_v not_o limit_v to_o any_o place_n or_o country_n 3._o that_o they_o have_v power_n through_o imposition_n of_o their_o hand_n to_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o visible_a sign_n 4._o that_o they_o be_v direct_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o their_o office_n by_o the_o especial_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o last_o that_o their_o doctrine_n which_o they_o deliver_v in_o write_v be_v to_o be_v a_o canon_n and_o rule_n to_o all_o church_n for_o ever_o all_o which_o personal_a prerogative_n although_o they_o do_v then_o appertain_v and_o be_v then_o adherent_a to_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o apostolic_a function_n and_o be_v necessary_a at_o the_o first_o for_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o they_o do_v not_o contain_v in_o they_o any_o of_o the_o say_v essential_a part_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o likewise_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v communicate_v by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o any_o other_o so_o as_o either_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o propagation_n and_o continuance_n of_o the_o eccelesiastical_a ministry_n do_v communicate_v to_o other_o the_o say_v three_o essential_a part_n of_o it_o viz._n power_n to_o preach_v to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o authority_n of_o government_n wherein_o must_v be_v degree_n some_o to_o direct_v and_o some_o to_o be_v direct_v or_o else_o they_o die_v all_o with_o they_o which_o be_v a_o very_a wicked_a and_o a_o idle_a conceit_n the_o apostle_n have_v power_n to_o communicate_v they_o all_o alike_o as_o by_o their_o proceed_n it_o will_v appear_v at_o the_o first_o they_o themselves_o with_o the_o evangelist_n and_o so_o many_o of_o the_o prophet_n as_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n after_o they_o have_v convert_v many_o to_o the_o faith_n do_v execute_v in_o their_o own_o person_n agreeable_o to_o their_o several_a calling_n all_o those_o ecclesiastical_a function_n as_o be_v afterward_o of_o necessity_n and_o in_o due_a time_n to_o be_v distinguish_v and_o settle_v in_o some_o other_o whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o church_n in_o jerusalem_n during_o that_o time_n have_v no_o other_o deacon_n priest_n nor_o bishop_n but_o the_o apostle_n the_o evangelist_n and_o the_o say_a prophet_n but_o afterward_o the_o harvest_n grow_v great_a as_o to_o disburden_v themselves_o of_o some_o charge_n they_o ordain_v deacon_n so_o their_o own_o company_n apostle_n disciple_n or_o evangelist_n and_o prophet_n come_v short_a of_o that_o number_n of_o labourer_n which_o the_o say_a harvest_n require_v they_o do_v for_o their_o future_a aid_n choose_v unto_o themselves_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n certain_z other_o new_a disciple_n and_o scholar_n such_o as_o they_o find_v meet_v for_o that_o work_n and_o after_o some_o good_a experience_n have_v of_o they_o make_v they_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o their_o hand_n 6._o priest_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o do_v not_o for_o a_o time_n tie_v they_o to_o any_o particular_a place_n as_o have_v design_v they_o to_o be_v their_o fellow-labourer_n and_o coadjutor_n these_o man_n the_o apostle_n have_v common_o in_o their_o company_n and_o do_v not_o employ_v their_o pain_n and_o diligent_a preach_v for_o the_o speedy_a propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v their_o first_o and_o most_o principal_a care_n but_o likewise_o do_v use_v to_o send_v they_o hither_o and_o thither_o their_o occasion_n so_o require_v to_o the_o church_n already_o plant_v as_o their_o messenger_n and_o legate_n sufficient_o authorize_v for_o the_o dispatch_a of_o such_o affair_n as_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o 21._o of_o this_o number_n be_v timothy_n titus_n marcus_z epaphroditus_n 25._o sylvanus_n 24._o andronicus_n and_o divers_z other_o who_o in_o respect_n of_o such_o their_o apostolical_a employment_n and_o because_o also_o the_o apostle_n do_v oftentimes_o commend_v they_o great_o and_o join_v their_o name_n with_o their_o own_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o sundry_a their_o epistle_n to_o divers_a church_n 7._o be_v man_n of_o great_a reputation_n and_o authority_n among_o all_o christian_n in_o those_o day_n 23._o and_o have_v the_o name_n itself_o of_o apostle_n give_v unto_o they_o 25._o as_o former_o it_o have_v be_v observe_v of_o the_o 70._o disciple_n and_o these_o be_v the_o person_n who_o be_v afterward_o when_o they_o be_v tie_v to_o the_o oversight_n of_o divers_a particular_a church_n or_o congregation_n term_v bishop_n as_o it_o will_v afterward_o appear_v now_o because_o these_o apostolical_a person_n be_v still_o to_o attend_v upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o designment_n as_o be_v above_o mention_v and_o for_o that_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n every_o where_o do_v still_o increase_v the_o apostle_n hold_v it_o necessary_a to_o ordain_v by_o imposition_n of_o their_o hand_n a_o second_o degree_n of_o minister_n who_o be_v thereupon_o still_o to_o remain_v in_o the_o particular_a church_n or_o congregation_n that_o be_v already_o plant_v in_o divers_a city_n for_o in_o those_o
populous_a place_n church_n be_v first_o settle_v whilst_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o prophet_n that_o be_v minister_n with_o their_o coadjutor_n be_v travel_v from_o place_n to_o place_n as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v direct_v they_o to_o plant_v and_o order_v other_o church_n in_o other_o city_n elsewhere_o as_o god_n shall_v bless_v their_o labour_n the_o office_n of_o this_o second_o degree_n of_o minister_n be_v by_o preach_v and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n to_o confirm_v and_o increase_v to_o their_o utmost_a ability_n the_o number_n of_o christian_n in_o those_o city_n where_o they_o keep_v their_o residence_n and_o likewise_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o their_o common_a and_o joint_a counsel_n to_o advise_v and_o direct_v every_o particular_a congregation_n and_o member_n of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v when_o any_o difficulty_n do_v occur_v beside_o it_o appertain_v unto_o they_o by_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o law_n and_o upon_o conference_n with_o such_o as_o be_v penitent_a to_o bind_v and_o loose_v man_n sin_n and_o to_o keep_v back_o from_o receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n such_o as_o be_v notorious_a and_o obstinate_a offender_n until_o either_o willing_o by_o their_o persuasion_n or_o afterward_o by_o the_o apostle_n further_a chastisement_n they_o be_v bring_v to_o repentance_n only_o they_o want_v power_n and_o authority_n of_o ordination_n to_o make_v minister_n 23._o and_o of_o the_o apostolical_a key_n to_o excommunicate_v 6._o for_o the_o apostle_n have_v reserve_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n those_o two_o prerogative_n 14._o and_o be_v themselves_o during_o those_o first_o time_n 21._o now_o speak_v of_o by_o we_o not_o so_o far_o from_o the_o say_a city_n 2._o church_n 5_o and_o minister_n but_o that_o they_o well_o may_v and_o do_v thorough_o supply_v all_o their_o want_n whatsoever_o and_o also_o set_v a_o order_n in_o all_o matter_n of_o difficulty_n when_o they_o fall_v out_o among_o they_o concern_v either_o doctrine_n or_o discipline_n sometime_o themselves_o in_o their_o own_o person_n and_o sometime_o by_o their_o letter_n or_o messenger_n as_o the_o importance_n of_o those_o cause_n do_v require_v in_o these_o time_n it_o may_v well_o be_v grant_v that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o other_o bishop_n but_o the_o apostle_n and_o likewise_o that_o then_o their_o church_n or_o particular_a congregation_n in_o every_o city_n be_v advise_v and_o direct_v touch_v point_n of_o religion_n in_o manner_n and_o form_n aforesaid_a by_o the_o common_a and_o joint_a advice_n of_o their_o priest_n or_o minister_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o same_o person_n who_o then_o be_v name_v priest_n or_o minister_n be_v also_o in_o a_o general_a sense_n call_v bishop_n howbeit_o this_o course_n dure_v not_o long_o either_o concern_v their_o say_a common_a direction_n or_o their_o name_n of_o bishop_n so_o attribute_v unto_o they_o but_o be_v short_o after_o order_v far_o otherwise_o by_o a_o common_a decree_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o such_o city_n where_o particular_a church_n be_v plant_v 1._o or_o as_o one_o speak_v in_o toto_fw-la orb_n throughout_o the_o world_n for_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n grow_v daily_o in_o every_o city_n throughout_o those_o province_n and_o country_n where_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n prophet_n with_o their_o coadjutor_n first_o travel_v to_o plant_v the_o christian_a faith_n it_o be_v still_o more_o and_o more_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v distinguish_v into_o more_o congregation_n than_o they_o be_v before_o and_o that_o also_o the_o number_n of_o their_o say_a minister_n that_o be_v to_o be_v resident_a among_o they_o 17._o shall_v be_v according_o increase_v 4._o by_o reason_n of_o which_o increase_n 1._o as_o well_o of_o christian_n and_o particular_a congregation_n 8._o as_o of_o their_o say_a minister_n 18_o as_o also_o for_o that_o now_o it_o begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v 13._o that_o neither_o the_o apostle_n 3._o nor_o the_o evangelist_n 30._o nor_o their_o coadjutor_n and_o messenger_n can_v be_v always_o so_o ready_a etc._n and_o at_o hand_n or_o present_v with_o they_o 1._o as_o before_o they_o have_v be_v many_o question_n dissension_n and_o quarrel_n fall_v out_o among_o they_o both_o minister_n and_o particular_a congregation_n mention_v as_o by_o the_o place_n quote_v in_o the_o margin_n it_o be_v evident_a the_o people_n be_v as_o apt_a through_o affection_n and_o private_a respect_n to_o adhere_v to_o one_o man_n more_o than_o to_o another_o as_o sundry_a of_o their_o minister_n then_o be_v prompt_v for_o their_o own_o glory_n to_o entertain_v all_o comer_n 11._o and_o to_o embrace_v every_o occasion_n that_o may_v procure_v they_o many_o follower_n not_o spare_v to_o oppose_v themselves_o in_o their_o pride_n against_o the_o very_a apostle_n and_o to_o charge_v they_o with_o ambitious_a seek_v of_o pre-eminence_n above_o their_o brethren_n minister_n as_o if_o they_o have_v mean_v to_o tyrannize_v and_o domineer_v over_o all_o church_n 9_o insomuch_o as_o st._n john_n complain_v in_o his_o time_n of_o such_o insolence_n and_o st._n paul_n be_v drive_v to_o purge_v himself_o but_o yet_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o stand_v upon_o the_o justification_n of_o his_o apostolical_a authority_n i_o grant_v say_v he_o that_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o christ_n but_o withal_o he_o add_v these_o word_n i_o be_o more_o protest_v that_o although_o he_o be_v more_o than_o they_o be_v yet_o he_o seek_v to_o have_v no_o dominion_n over_o the_o faith_n of_o any_o the_o place_n quote_v in_o the_o margin_n deserve_v due_a consideration_n and_o many_o other_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n may_v be_v add_v unto_o they_o now_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v well_o understand_v the_o say_v opposition_n dissension_n and_o emulation_n and_o that_o the_o people_n have_v as_o well_o experience_n what_o equality_n wrought_v among_o their_o minister_n in_o every_o place_n whilst_o each_o man_n will_v be_v a_o director_n as_o he_o list_v himself_o and_o according_o broach_v his_o own_o fancy_n without_o controlment_n or_o spare_v of_o any_o that_o stand_v in_o his_o way_n as_o also_o how_v themselves_o the_o people_n be_v distract_v and_o lead_v to_o the_o embrace_v of_o divers_a sect_n and_o schism_n they_o the_o say_a apostle_n have_v now_o no_o such_o leisure_n and_o opportunity_n as_o that_o they_o can_v themselves_o every_o where_o appease_v these_o quarrel_n do_v find_v it_o necessary_a to_o settle_v another_o course_n for_o the_o redress_n of_o they_o by_o other_o for_o whereas_o before_o the_o apostle_n hold_v it_o convenient_a when_o they_o first_o plant_v minister_n in_o every_o city_n to_o detain_v still_o in_o their_o own_o hand_n the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o key_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n because_o they_o themselves_o for_o that_o time_n with_o the_o evangelist_n and_o other_o their_o coadjutor_n be_v sufficient_a to_o oversee_v and_o rule_v they_o now_o for_o the_o reason_n abovementioned_a they_o do_v commit_v those_o their_o say_v two_o prerogative_n contain_v in_o they_o all_o episcopal_a power_n and_o authority_n unto_o such_o of_o their_o say_a coadjutor_n as_o upon_o sufficient_a trial_n of_o their_o ability_n and_o diligence_n they_o know_v to_o be_v meet_a man_n both_o whilst_o they_o themselves_o live_v to_o be_v their_o substitute_n and_o after_o their_o death_n to_o be_v their_o succcessor_n both_o for_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o further_a building_n of_o his_o church_n and_o likewise_o for_o the_o perpetual_a government_n of_o it_o and_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n who_o have_v the_o charge_n but_o of_o one_o particular_a church_n or_o congregation_n and_o be_v of_o a_o inferior_a degree_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o first_o and_o superior_a sort_n of_o minister_n term_v most_o of_o they_o before_o the_o apostle_n coadjutor_n and_o now_o and_o from_o thenceforth_o call_v bishop_n unto_o which_o sort_n of_o worthy_a and_o select_a coadjutor_n and_o unto_o some_o other_o also_o of_o especial_a desert_n so_o advance_v to_o the_o title_n and_o office_n of_o bishop_n the_o apostle_n do_v commit_v the_o charge_n and_o oversight_n of_o all_o the_o particular_a congregation_n minister_n and_o christian_a people_n that_o dwell_v in_o one_o city_n and_o in_o the_o town_n and_o village_n thereunto_o appertain_v and_o such_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n in_o asia_n 11._o who_o be_v then_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o city_n with_o their_o several_a territory_n and_o so_o in_o all_o time_n and_o age_n that_o since_o have_v succeed_v have_v ever_o be_v repute_v and_o unto_o some_o other_o the_o most_o principal_a and_o chief_a man_n of_o the_o say_a number_n the_o apostle_n do_v likewise_o give_v authority_n not_o only_o over_o the_o
shadow_n sacrifice_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o be_v typical_a in_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o priesthood_n of_o aaron_n be_v true_o fulfil_v and_o have_v their_o several_a accomplishment_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o yet_o we_o be_v further_a to_o understand_v that_o as_o from_o the_o begin_n there_o be_v a_o church_n so_o there_o be_v ever_o a_o ministry_n the_o essential_a part_n of_o who_o office_n howsoever_o otherwise_o it_o be_v burden_v with_o ceremony_n do_v consist_v in_o these_o three_o duty_n viz._n 1._o preach_v of_o the_o word_n 2._o administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o 3._o authority_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o that_o none_o of_o all_o the_o say_a figure_n shadow_n and_o sacrifice_n or_o any_o other_o ceremony_n of_o the_o levitical_a law_n have_v any_o such_o relation_n to_o any_o of_o the_o say_v three_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o ministry_n as_o if_o either_o they_o the_o say_v three_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o ministry_n have_v only_o be_v ordain_v for_o their_o continuance_n until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n or_o that_o the_o accomplishment_n or_o fulfil_n of_o the_o say_a ceremony_n have_v in_o any_o sort_n prejudice_v or_o impeach_v the_o continuance_n of_o they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o so_o as_o the_o say_v three_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v in_o no_o sort_n abolish_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o translate_v from_o the_o priesthood_n under_o the_o law_n to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n where_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o learned_a man_n opposite_a in_o divers_a point_n one_o to_o another_o they_o do_v or_o aught_o for_o ever_o to_o remain_v to_o the_o same_o end_n and_o purpose_n for_o the_o which_o they_o be_v first_o ordain_v now_o concern_v the_o two_o first_o essential_a part_n of_o this_o our_o ministry_n or_o priesthood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n worthy_a the_o insist_v upon_o how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v use_v only_o the_o three_o essential_a part_n of_o it_o as_o touch_v the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n be_v very_o much_o controvert_v and_o diverse_o expound_v extend_v and_o apply_v for_o some_o man_n rely_v upon_o one_o extremity_n do_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n radical_o inherent_a only_o in_o st._n peter_n and_o so_o by_o a_o certain_a consequence_n afterward_o in_o his_o suppose_a vicar_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v derive_v from_o st._n peter_n first_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o minister_n while_o he_o live_v and_o then_o after_o his_o death_n in_o a_o fit_a proportion_n to_o all_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o minister_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o st._n peter_n during_o his_o time_n and_o every_o one_o of_o his_o vicar_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n successive_o than_o do_v and_o still_o do_v occupy_v and_o enjoy_v the_o like_a power_n and_o authority_n over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n that_o aaron_n have_v in_o the_o church_n establish_v among_o the_o jew_n there_o be_v also_o another_o sort_n of_o person_n that_o run_v as_o far_o to_o another_o extremity_n and_o do_v challenge_v the_o say_a power_n and_o authority_n of_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n to_o appertain_v to_o a_o new_a form_n of_o church-government_n by_o presbytery_n to_o be_v place_v in_o every_o particular_a parish_n which_o presbytery_n as_o divers_a of_o they_o say_v be_v so_o many_o complete_a and_o perfect_a church_n no_o one_o of_o they_o have_v any_o dependency_n upon_o any_o other_o church_n so_o as_o the_o pastor_n in_o every_o such_o presbytery_n represent_v after_o a_o sort_n aaron_n the_o high_a priest_n there_o will_v be_v by_o this_o project_n if_o it_o be_v admit_v as_o many_o aaron_n in_o every_o christian_a kingdom_n as_o there_o be_v particular_a parish_n and_o the_o author_n of_o both_o these_o so_o different_a and_o extreme_a conceit_n be_v all_o of_o they_o most_o resolute_a and_o peremptory_a that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o deduce_v and_o prove_v they_o out_o of_o the_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o be_v establish_v by_o god_n himself_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n howbeit_o notwithstanding_o all_o their_o vaunt_n and_o show_v of_o learning_n by_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n council_n and_o ancient_a father_n the_o mean_a betwixt_o both_o the_o say_v extreme_n be_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o be_v embrace_v viz._n that_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o say_a power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n under_o christian_a king_n and_o supreme_a magistrate_n do_v especial_o belong_v by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n unto_o arch-bishop_n and_o bishop_n this_o mean_a bear_v the_o true_a pourtraicture_n and_o infallible_a lineament_n of_o god_n own_o ordinance_n abovementioned_a and_o contain_v in_o it_o divers_a degree_n of_o priest_n agreeable_a to_o the_o very_a order_n and_o light_n of_o nature_n some_o superior_a to_o rule_v and_o some_o inferior_a to_o be_v rule_v as_o in_o all_o other_o society_n and_o civil_a state_n it_o have_v be_v ever_o accustom_v so_o as_o we_o be_v bold_a to_o say_v and_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v it_o that_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v god_n have_v former_o ordain_v in_o his_o national_a church_n among_o the_o jew_n priest_n and_o levite_n of_o a_o inferior_a order_n to_o teach_v they_o in_o every_o city_n and_o synagogue_n and_o over_o they_o priest_n of_o a_o superior_a degree_n term_v principes_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la and_o last_o above_o they_o all_o one_o aaron_n with_o moses_n to_o rule_v and_o direct_v they_o so_o he_o no_o way_n purpose_v by_o his_o passion_n more_o to_o abrogate_v or_o prejudice_v this_o form_n of_o church-government_n ordain_v by_o himself_o than_o he_o do_v thereby_o the_o temporal_a government_n of_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n do_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o ministry_n of_o his_o apostle_n ordain_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o every_o national_a church_n some_o minister_n of_o a_o inferior_a degree_n to_o instruct_v his_o people_n in_o every_o particular_a parochial_a church_n or_o congregation_n and_o over_o they_o bishop_n of_o a_o superior_a degree_n to_o have_v a_o care_n and_o inspection_n over_o many_o such_o parochial_a church_n or_o congregation_n for_o the_o better_a order_n as_o well_o of_o the_o minister_n as_o of_o the_o people_n within_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o last_o above_o they_o all_o archbishop_n and_o in_o some_o especial_a place_n patriarch_n who_o be_v first_o themselves_o with_o the_o advice_n of_o some_o other_o bishop_n and_o when_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n become_v christian_n then_o with_o their_o especial_a aid_n and_o assistance_n to_o oversee_v and_o direct_v for_o the_o better_a peace_n and_o government_n of_o every_o such_o national_a church_n all_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n therein_o establish_v and_o for_o some_o proof_n hereof_o we_o will_v conclude_v this_o chapter_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o of_o no_o mean_a account_n and_o desert_n who_o when_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n do_v most_o obstinate_o oppose_v themselves_o as_o be_v the_o pope_n vassal_n to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o principal_a deviser_n of_o the_o say_a presbytery_n though_o not_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o some_o have_v since_o with_o too_o much_o bitterness_n urge_v whereof_o out_o of_o all_o question_n he_o will_v never_o have_v dream_v if_o the_o say_a bishop_n have_v not_o be_v so_o obstinate_a as_o they_o be_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o such_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n as_o be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v tolerate_v that_o every_o province_n have_v among_o their_o bishop_n one_o archbishop_n 4._o that_o also_o in_o the_o nicene_n council_n patriarch_n be_v appoint_v who_o be_v in_o order_n and_o degree_n above_o archbishop_n that_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o preservation_n of_o discipline_n and_o a_o little_a after_o speak_v of_o the_o say_a form_n of_o government_n so_o frame_v although_o he_o show_v some_o dislike_n of_o the_o word_n hierarchia_fw-la yet_o say_v he_o si_fw-mi omisso_fw-la vocabulo_fw-la rem_fw-la intueamur_fw-la reperiemus_fw-la veteres_n episcopos_fw-la non_fw-la aliam_fw-la regendae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la formam_fw-la voluisse_fw-la fingere_fw-la ab_fw-la eâ_fw-la quam_fw-la dominus_fw-la verbo_fw-la svo_fw-la praescripsit_fw-la can._n v._n and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o or_o that_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v otherwise_o to_o be_v term_v one_o church_n than_o as_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o head_n of_o
it_o and_o as_o all_o the_o particular_a kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n be_v call_v but_o one_o kingdom_n as_o he_o be_v the_o only_a king_n and_o monarch_n of_o it_o or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v not_o appoint_v under_o he_o several_a ecclesiastical_a governor_n to_o rule_v and_o direct_v the_o say_v particular_a church_n as_o he_o have_v appoint_v several_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v their_o several_a kingdom_n or_o that_o by_o his_o death_n he_o do_v not_o abolish_v the_o ceremonial_a law_n and_o the_o levitical_a priesthood_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v typical_a and_o have_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o say_v ceremonial_a law_n annex_v unto_o it_o or_o that_o he_o do_v any_o more_o abrogate_v by_o his_o death_n passion_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o church-government_n than_o either_o he_o do_v the_o other_o two_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o say_a priesthood_n or_o ministry_n or_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o that_o he_o do_v more_o appoint_v any_o one_o chief_a bishop_n to_o rule_v all_o the_o particular_a church_n which_o shall_v be_v plant_v throughout_o all_o kingdom_n than_o he_o do_v appoint_v any_o one_o king_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v all_o the_o particular_a kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n or_o that_o it_o be_v more_o reasonable_a or_o necessary_a as_o hereafter_o it_o shall_v be_v further_o show_v to_o have_v one_o bishop_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n than_o it_o be_v to_o have_v one_o king_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n or_o that_o it_o be_v more_o necessary_a or_o convenient_a to_o have_v every_o parish_n with_o their_o presbytery_n absolute_a church_n independent_a upon_o any_o but_o christ_n himself_o than_o that_o every_o such_o parish_n shall_v be_v a_o absolute_a temporal_a kingdom_n independent_a of_o any_o earthly_a king_n or_o sovereign_a magistrate_n or_o that_o the_o government_n of_o every_o national_a church_n under_o christian_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n by_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n be_v not_o more_o suitable_a and_o correspondent_a to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o national_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n under_o their_o sovereign_a prince_n and_o king_n than_o be_v either_o the_o government_n of_o one_o over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n or_o the_o settle_n of_o the_o form_n of_o that_o national_a church-government_n in_o every_o particular_a church_n he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n vii_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o the_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v consist_v upon_o divers_a degree_n of_o minister_n one_o above_o another_o apostle_n in_o preeminence_n and_o authority_n superior_a to_o the_o evangelist_n and_o the_o evangelist_n superior_a to_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n know_v themselves_o to_o be_v mortal_a do_v in_o their_o own_o day_n by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n grow_v establish_v the_o say_a form_n of_o government_n in_o other_o person_n appoint_v several_a minister_n in_o sundry_a city_n and_o over_o they_o bishop_n as_o also_o over_o such_o bishop_n certain_a worthy_a person_n such_o as_o titus_n be_v who_o be_v afterward_o term_v arch-bishop_n to_o who_o they_o do_v commit_v so_o much_o of_o their_o apostolical_a authority_n as_o they_o hold_v then_o necessary_a and_o be_v to_o be_v continue_v for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v in_o our_o former_a book_n the_o scripture_n at_o large_a contain_v the_o history_n and_o doctrine_n both_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n after_o the_o manner_n that_o be_v then_o prescribe_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o creation_n until_o the_o day_n of_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n that_o be_v for_o above_o 3500._o year_n whereupon_o we_o do_v ground_n the_o particular_a point_n by_o we_o therein_o handle_v concern_v the_o government_n as_o well_o ecclesiastical_a as_o temporal_a and_o for_o the_o supply_n of_o the_o other_o year_n follow_v till_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n we_o observe_v some_o thing_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n out_o of_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n second_o to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n but_o now_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v but_o in_o effect_n a_o more_o ample_a declaration_n the_o old_a show_v withal_o how_o the_o same_o be_v most_o thorough_o fulfil_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n without_o the_o impeachment_n of_o any_o kind_n of_o government_n by_o himself_o ordain_v as_o before_o we_o have_v express_v and_o because_o the_o book_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n do_v only_o contain_v the_o act_n and_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n with_o the_o form_n and_o use_v both_o of_o the_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n during_o the_o time_n whilst_o they_o live_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n st._n john_n who_o live_v the_o long_a of_o they_o all_o die_v about_o sixty_o six_o year_n after_o christ_n passion_n although_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v judge_v the_o say_a book_n and_o write_n sufficient_a for_o the_o church_n and_o all_o that_o profess_v christianity_n to_o teach_v and_o direct_v they_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v appertain_v either_o to_o their_o temporal_a or_o ecclesiastical_a government_n or_o shall_v be_v necessary_a unto_o their_o salvation_n yet_o for_o the_o say_a reason_n we_o be_v induce_v for_o the_o uphold_v of_o the_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o insist_v so_o much_o as_o we_o have_v do_v upon_o the_o precedent_n and_o platform_n of_o both_o those_o kind_n of_o government_n establish_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n albeit_o we_o want_v no_o sufficient_a testimony_n in_o the_o new_a to_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o first_o therefore_o we_o do_v very_o think_v that_o if_o our_o saviour_n christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n have_v mean_v to_o have_v erect_v in_o the_o church_n among_o the_o gentile_n any_o other_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n than_o god_n himself_o have_v set_v up_o among_o the_o jew_n they_o will_v have_v do_v it_o assure_o in_o very_o solemn_a manner_n that_o all_o the_o world_n may_v have_v take_v public_a notice_n of_o it_o consider_v with_o what_o majesty_n and_o authority_n the_o say_a form_n be_v erect_v at_o god_n commandment_n by_o his_o servant_n moses_n but_o in_o that_o they_o well_o know_v how_o the_o form_n of_o the_o old_a ecclesiastical_a government_n in_o substance_n be_v still_o to_o continue_v and_o to_o be_v in_o time_n establish_v in_o every_o national_a kingdom_n and_o sovereign_a principality_n among_o christian_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o shall_v become_v for_o number_v sufficient_a body_n and_o ample_a church_n to_o receive_v the_o same_o as_o before_o the_o like_a opportunity_n it_o be_v not_o establish_v among_o the_o israelite_n they_o do_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n and_o as_o the_o time_n do_v serve_v they_o attempt_v the_o erect_n of_o it_o in_o such_o sort_n and_o by_o such_o fit_a and_o convenient_a degree_n as_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o hold_v it_o most_o expedient_a without_o intermission_n till_o such_o time_n as_o the_o work_n be_v in_o effect_n accomplish_v it_o have_v be_v before_o touch_v how_o our_o saviour_n christ_n here_o upon_o earth_n do_v not_o only_o choose_v to_o himself_o for_o the_o business_n he_o have_v in_o hand_n twelve_o apostle_n who_o be_v then_o design_v in_o time_n to_o come_v to_o be_v the_o patriarch_n and_o chief_a father_n of_o all_o christian_n with_o some_o resemblance_n as_o it_o have_v be_v ever_o hold_v of_o the_o twelve_o son_n of_o jacob_n who_o have_v be_v in_o their_o day_n the_o patriarch_n and_o chief_a father_n of_o all_o the_o israelite_n but_o likewise_o he_o take_v unto_o he_o over_z and_o beside_o his_o say_a apostle_n 70_o or_o as_o some_o read_v 72_o disciple_n to_o be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n his_o assistant_n in_o imitation_n of_o moses_n when_o he_o choose_v 70._o elder_n to_o be_v helper_n unto_o he_o for_o the_o better_a government_n of_o the_o people_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n none_o of_o these_o either_o apostle_n or_o disciple_n have_v then_o any_o other_o duty_n commit_v to_o they_o but_o only_o of_o preach_v and_o baptise_v for_o the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n they_o may_v not_o then_o intermeddle_v with_o because_o it_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o priest_n and_o court_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o afterward_o that_o want_n and_o some_o other_o defect_n in_o they_o be_v thorough_o supply_v when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n upon_o his_o resurrection_n and_o a_o little_a
particular_a congregation_n minister_n and_o people_n in_o one_o city_n and_o in_o the_o town_n that_o do_v belong_v unto_o it_o but_o likewise_o over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o certain_a whole_a province_n and_o country_n 3_o as_o unto_o timothy_n all_o that_o be_v in_o asia_n the_o less_o 5._o and_o unto_o titus_n all_o that_o be_v plant_v throughout_o the_o island_n of_o crete_n and_o this_o sort_n of_o bishop_n who_o have_v so_o large_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o in_o particular_a city_n be_v afterward_o call_v archbishop_n over_o who_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o likewise_o over_o all_o the_o rest_n bishop_n and_o minister_n and_o particular_a church_n the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o the_o chief_a father_n and_o patriarch_n of_o all_o church_n have_v whilst_o they_o live_v the_o chief_a pre-eminence_n and_o oversight_n to_o direct_v and_o over-rule_v all_o as_o they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v most_o convenient_a and_o behooveful_a for_o the_o church_n communicate_v notwithstanding_o unto_o the_o say_a bishop_n and_o archbishop_n now_o their_o substitute_n but_o in_o time_n to_o be_v their_o successor_n as_o full_a authority_n in_o their_o absence_n with_o the_o limitation_n mention_v for_o the_o order_n of_o minister_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n and_o for_o the_o further_a government_n of_o all_o the_o church_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n by_o the_o good_a advice_n and_o counsel_n of_o the_o inferior_a sort_n of_o priest_n or_o minister_n under_o they_o when_o cause_n so_o require_v as_o if_o they_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v be_v present_a or_o can_v have_v always_o live_v to_o have_v perform_v those_o duty_n in_o their_o own_o person_n their_o patriarchal_a authority_n for_o government_n not_o cease_v or_o die_v with_o they_o of_o this_o authority_n of_o ordination_n and_o government_n give_v to_o bishop_n by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n st._n paul_n he_o himself_o have_v leave_v to_o all_o posterity_n most_o clear_a and_o evident_a testimony_n where_o write_v to_o two_o of_o his_o say_a bishop_n timothy_n and_o titus_n he_o describe_v very_o particular_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o episcopal_a office_n in_o manner_n and_o sort_n follow_v for_o this_o cause_n i_o leave_v thou_o at_o crete_n 5._o that_o thou_o shall_v continue_v to_o redress_v the_o thing_n that_o remain_v and_o shall_v ordain_v priest_n or_o elder_n in_o every_o city_n 22._o as_o i_o appoint_v thou_o 10._o lay_v hand_n hasty_o on_o no_o man_n 19_o neither_o be_v partaker_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n let_v they_o first_o be_v prove_v then_o let_v they_o minister_v if_o they_o be_v find_v blameless_a against_o a_o presbyter_n or_o priest_n receive_v no_o accusation_n but_o under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n they_o that_o sin_n rebuke_v open_o 7._o that_o the_o rest_n may_v fear_v i_o pray_v thou_o to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n to_o command_v some_o that_o they_o teach_v no_o strange_a doctrine_n neither_o that_o they_o give_v heed_n to_o fable_n and_o genealogy_n which_o be_v endless_a and_o do_v breed_v question_n rather_o than_o godly_a edification_n which_o be_v by_o faith_n they_o will_v be_v doctor_n of_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o understand_v not_o what_o they_o speak_v 11._o neither_o whereof_o they_o affirm_v there_o be_v many_o disobedient_a and_o vain_a talker_n and_o deceiver_n of_o mind_n who_o mouth_n must_v be_v stop_v which_o subvert_v whole_a house_n teach_v thing_n which_o they_o ought_v not_o 9_o for_o filthy_a lucre_n sake_n stay_v foolish_a question_n and_o contention_n 10._o reject_v he_o that_o be_v a_o heretic_n after_o one_o or_o two_o warning_n 15._o these_o thing_n speak_v and_o exhort_v and_o rebuke_v with_o all_o authority_n see_v that_o no_o man_n despise_v thou_o what_o thing_n thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o the_o same_o deliver_v to_o faithful_a man_n which_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o teach_v other_o also_o put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n and_o protest_v before_o the_o lord_n 2._o that_o they_o strive_v not_o about_o word_n 14._o which_o be_v to_o no_o profit_n 16._o but_o to_o the_o pervert_n of_o the_o hearer_n 23._o stay_v profane_a and_o vain_a babble_n for_o they_o shall_v increase_v unto_o more_o ungodliness_n put_v away_o all_o foolish_a and_o unlearned_a question_n know_v that_o they_o engender_v strife_n i_o charge_v thou_o before_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 21._o and_o the_o elect_a angel_n that_o thou_o observe_v these_o thing_n without_o prefer_v one_o to_o another_o and_o do_v nothing_o partial_o divers_a other_o particular_n may_v be_v hereunto_o add_v be_v it_o not_o that_o these_o be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o purpose_n to_o show_v as_o well_o what_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o say_v timothy_n and_o titus_n two_o apostolical_a bishop_n new_o design_v unto_o their_o episcopal_a function_n as_o also_o what_o authority_n the_o apostle_n himself_o have_v whilst_o he_o live_v both_o of_o prescribe_v rule_n unto_o they_o and_o also_o of_o exact_v the_o due_a observation_n of_o they_o he_o retain_v still_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n as_o full_a power_n and_o ample_a jurisdiction_n over_o they_o as_o they_o the_o say_v bishop_n have_v receive_v from_o he_o over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ministry_n within_o their_o several_a charge_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v how_o by_o degree_n the_o apostle_n do_v settle_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n among_o the_o gentile_n convert_v to_o christ_n most_o suitable_a and_o agree_v with_o the_o platform_n ordain_v by_o god_n himself_o among_o the_o jew_n minister_n be_v place_v in_o particular_a congregation_n as_o priest_n or_o levite_n be_v in_o their_o synagogue_n four_o and_o twenty_o priest_n term_v principes_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la have_v in_o that_o kingdom_n the_o charge_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o among_o christian_n one_o sort_n of_o priest_n name_v bishop_n or_o arch-bishop_n as_o their_o jurisdiction_n be_v extend_v have_v the_o oversight_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ministry_n or_o priesthood_n last_o as_o over_o all_o the_o priest_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o and_o over_o the_o rest_n of_o all_o the_o jew_n aaron_n have_v the_o chief_a preeminence_n so_o have_v the_o apostle_n over_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o over_o the_o rest_n of_o all_o christian_n there_o be_v only_o this_o want_n to_o the_o full_a accomplishment_n of_o such_o a_o church-government_n as_o be_v settle_v among_o the_o jew_n that_o during_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o for_o a_o long_a season_n afterward_o it_o want_v christian_a magistrate_n to_o supply_v the_o room_n of_o moses_n king_n david_n king_n solomon_n and_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o worthy_a successor_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o particular_a success_n that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v in_o plant_v of_o church_n throughout_o all_o africa_n and_o asia_n the_o great_a and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o europe_n but_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o they_o follow_v that_o same_o course_n in_o those_o part_n near_o or_o better_o know_v to_o we_o they_o proceed_v within_o their_o limit_n as_o st._n paul_n do_v within_o his_o and_o moreover_o we_o have_v sufficient_a warrant_n by_o the_o say_a practice_n of_o our_o apostle_n to_o judge_v that_o if_o all_o the_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n of_o the_o world_n will_v have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n whilst_o the_o apostle_n live_v they_o will_v have_v settle_v this_o platform_n of_o church-government_n under_o they_o in_o every_o such_o kingdom_n and_o sovereign_a principality_n that_o as_o the_o three_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o priesthood_n under_o the_o law_n be_v translate_v to_o the_o ministry_n or_o priesthood_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n so_o the_o external_a show_n or_o practice_n of_o they_o may_v have_v be_v in_o effect_n the_o same_o under_o christian_a prince_n that_o it_o be_v under_o the_o godly_a king_n and_o prince_n of_o judah_n christian_n of_o particular_a congregation_n to_o be_v direct_v by_o their_o immediate_a pastor_n pastor_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o their_o bishop_n bishop_n to_o be_v advise_v by_o their_o archbishop_n and_o the_o archbishop_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n both_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n to_o be_v rule_v and_o govern_v by_o their_o godly_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n can._n vi_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o the_o platform_n of_o church-government_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n may_v not_o lawful_o be_v deduce_v from_o that_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o be_v in_o the_o old_a or_o that_o because_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o once_o for_o all_o and_o at_o one_o time_n but_o by_o degree_n erect_v such_o a_o like_a form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n as_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v that_o they_o
mean_v at_o all_o to_o erect_v it_o or_o that_o their_o expectation_n of_o fit_a opportunity_n to_o establish_v that_o kind_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v convert_v to_o christ_n have_v any_o more_o force_n to_o discredit_v it_o than_o have_v the_o want_n of_o it_o for_o many_o year_n among_o the_o jew_n to_o blemish_v the_o dignity_n of_o it_o when_o it_o be_v there_o establish_v or_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o further_a authority_n of_o church-government_n commit_v unto_o they_o after_o the_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o christ_n than_o they_o have_v before_o his_o passion_n or_o that_o there_o be_v not_o as_o great_a necessity_n of_o sundry_a degree_n in_o the_o ministry_n whilst_o the_o apostle_n live_v one_o to_o rule_v another_o to_o be_v rule_v for_o the_o establish_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n as_o there_o be_v whilst_o the_o priesthood_n of_o aaron_n endure_v or_o that_o christ_n himself_o do_v not_o after_o a_o sort_n approve_v of_o divers_a degree_n of_o minister_n some_o to_o have_v pre-eminence_n over_o other_o in_o that_o have_v choose_v to_o himself_o twelve_o apostle_n he_o do_v also_o elect_v 70._o disciple_n who_o be_v neither_o superior_a nor_o equal_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v therefore_o their_o inferior_n or_o that_o he_o do_v not_o very_o express_o after_o his_o ascension_n appoint_v divers_a order_n and_o degree_n of_o minister_n who_o have_v power_n and_o pre-eminence_n one_o over_o another_o apostle_n over_o the_o prophet_n and_o evangelist_n and_o the_o evangelist_n over_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n or_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o preach_v of_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o to_o be_v communicate_v by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o other_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v good_a opportunity_n in_o that_o behalf_n or_o that_o because_o there_o be_v some_o personal_a prerogative_n belong_v to_o the_o apostle_n which_o they_o can_v not_o communicate_v unto_o other_o therefore_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o communicate_v to_o some_o minister_n as_o well_o their_o authority_n of_o government_n over_o other_o minister_n as_o their_o authority_n to_o preach_v and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n or_o that_o in_o the_o authority_n of_o government_n so_o to_o be_v communicate_v unto_o other_o by_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v not_o include_v certain_a degree_n to_o be_v in_o the_o ministry_n some_o to_o rule_v and_o some_o to_o be_v rule_v or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o apostle_n to_o choose_v unto_o themselves_o coadjutor_n and_o to_o make_v they_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n though_o they_o tie_v they_o for_o a_o space_n to_o no_o certain_a place_n more_o than_o they_o themselves_o and_o the_o evangelist_n be_v limit_v or_o tie_v but_o keep_v they_o in_o their_o own_o company_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v in_o a_o manner_n their_o fellow_n and_o employ_v they_o in_o apostolical_a embassage_n as_o there_o be_v occasion_n or_o that_o the_o apostle_n may_v not_o lawful_o ordain_v a_o second_o order_n of_o minister_n by_o imposition_n of_o their_o hand_n to_o preach_v and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o tie_v they_o to_o particular_a church_n and_o congregation_n there_o to_o execute_v those_o their_o duty_n or_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o that_o second_o degree_n and_o order_n so_o tie_v unto_o their_o particular_a charge_n have_v any_o power_n commit_v unto_o they_o either_o at_o all_o to_o make_v minister_n or_o to_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n against_o any_o of_o their_o congregation_n but_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o they_o have_v give_v the_o sentence_n during_o all_o the_o time_n that_o the_o apostle_n keep_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n the_o say_v two_o point_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o expedient_a for_o the_o apostle_n to_o retain_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n for_o a_o time_n and_o whilst_o they_o be_v able_a to_o execute_v the_o same_o in_o their_o own_o person_n or_o by_o their_o coadjutor_n as_o they_o shall_v direct_v they_o and_o not_o to_o communicate_v the_o same_o either_o to_o any_o their_o say_a coadjutor_n or_o other_o person_n of_o the_o ministry_n until_o they_o themselves_o have_v good_a experience_n and_o trial_n of_o they_o and_o that_o the_o particular_a church_n also_o in_o every_o city_n find_v the_o want_n of_o such_o man_n so_o authorize_v to_o reside_v among_o they_o or_o that_o when_o the_o say_v minister_n place_v in_o divers_a particular_a church_n in_o sundry_a city_n fall_v at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o which_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v most_o prevalent_a among_o the_o people_n and_o draw_v their_o follower_n into_o divers_a sect_n and_o schism_n it_o be_v not_o high_a time_n for_o the_o apostle_n see_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o great_a affair_n and_o business_n otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o attend_v those_o particular_a brawl_n and_o inconvenience_n to_o appoint_v some_o worthy_a person_n in_o every_o city_n to_o have_v the_o rule_n government_n and_o direction_n of_o they_o or_o that_o when_o such_o man_n be_v to_o be_v place_v in_o such_o city_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o make_v especial_a choice_n of_o they_o out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o their_o say_a coadjutor_n and_o likewise_o out_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ministry_n to_o execute_v those_o episcopal_a duty_n which_o do_v appertain_v to_o their_o calling_n or_o that_o when_o they_o have_v so_o design_v and_o choose_v they_o to_o be_v bishop_n they_o do_v not_o communicate_v unto_o they_o as_o well_o their_o apostolical_a authority_n of_o ordain_v of_o minister_n and_o power_n of_o the_o key_n as_o of_o preach_v and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n that_o such_o person_n as_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v aught_o to_o be_v make_v bishop_n in_o such_o city_n and_o country_n as_o be_v that_o province_n of_o ephesus_n and_o kingdom_n of_o crete_n to_o have_v the_o like_a authority_n and_o power_n give_v they_o in_o their_o several_a city_n with_o their_o suburb_n diocese_n or_o province_n that_o be_v commit_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n for_o the_o rule_n of_o those_o minister_n and_o church_n under_o they_o or_o that_o the_o authority_n give_v by_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n or_o by_o any_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o such_o like_a other_o bishop_n or_o archbishop_n do_v any_o more_o diminish_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n before_o they_o appoint_v any_o such_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o all_o than_o their_o give_a power_n and_o authority_n of_o preach_v and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n do_v impeach_v their_o own_o authority_n so_o to_o do_v he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n viii_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o the_o church_n and_o godly_a father_n that_o be_v immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n since_o do_v account_v the_o form_n of_o church-government_n establish_v by_o the_o apostle_n of_o priest_n and_o minister_n for_o more_o particular_a charge_n of_o bishop_n superior_a to_o the_o say_a priest_n and_o of_o arch-bishop_n to_o have_v the_o care_n and_o oversight_n of_o the_o say_a bishop_n and_o church_n commit_v unto_o they_o not_o to_o have_v be_v ordain_v for_o their_o time_n only_o but_o to_o be_v continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o same_o reason_n exact_v the_o continuance_n of_o it_o which_o move_v the_o apostle_n by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n first_o to_o erect_v it_o we_o have_v pursue_v the_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o it_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n during_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o further_a proof_n whereof_o we_o have_v think_v it_o expedient_a brief_o to_o observe_v what_o the_o primitive_a church_n ancient_a father_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n have_v in_o their_o write_n testify_v and_o say_v of_o this_o matter_n as_o whether_o they_o hold_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o have_v authority_n over_o the_o church_n and_o ministry_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n and_o whether_o that_o form_n of_o church-government_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n wherein_o be_v divers_a degree_n of_o minister_n one_o sort_n to_o direct_v and_o rule_v viz._n bishop_n and_o the_o other_o to_o be_v direct_v and_o rule_v be_v only_o necessary_a for_o the_o first_o plantation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o not_o so_o afterward_o when_o the_o church_n be_v plant_v as_o if_o it_o
have_v be_v a_o lawful_a form_n of_o government_n whilst_o the_o apostle_n live_v but_o upon_o their_o death_n it_o become_v present_o to_o be_v unlawful_a it_o be_v very_o apparent_a and_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o in_o many_o greek_a copy_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v term_v bishop_n in_o the_o direction_n or_o subscription_n of_o two_o epistle_n which_o st._n paul_n do_v write_v unto_o they_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o say_a direction_n the_o second_o epistle_n write_v from_o rome_n unto_o timotheus_n the_o first_o bishop_n elect_v of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o again_o to_o titus_n elect_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o cretan_n write_v from_o nicopolis_n in_o macedonia_n moreover_o agreeable_a to_o the_o say_a subscription_n the_o ancient_a father_n general_o have_v no_o doubt_n upon_o their_o due_a search_v the_o scripture_n full_o consider_v of_o the_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n whilst_o the_o apostle_n live_v do_v with_o one_o consent_n whensoever_o they_o expound_v the_o epistle_n of_o st._n paul_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n or_o have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o two_o person_n very_o resolute_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v by_o the_o apostle_n make_v bishop_n and_o the_o same_o also_o they_o do_v testify_v of_o st._n james_n the_o apostle_n himself_o call_v the_o lord_n brother_n that_o he_o be_v make_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n his_o colleague_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o so_o also_o of_o the_o seven_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n in_o asia_n that_o they_o be_v so_o many_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostle_n ordination_n 5._o beside_o the_o say_v ancient_a father_n do_v very_o well_o know_v that_o when_o st._n paul_n say_v to_o timothy_n tim._n i_o charge_v thou_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 6._o and_o before_o jesus_n christ_n that_o thou_o keep_v this_o commandment_n without_o spot_n and_o unrebukable_a until_o the_o appear_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o timothy_n to_o observe_v those_o thing_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v to_o die_v long_o before_o and_o that_o therefore_o the_o precept_n and_o rule_n which_o st._n paul_n have_v give_v unto_o he_o to_o observe_v in_o his_o episcopal_a government_n do_v equal_o appertain_v as_o well_o to_o bishop_n his_o successor_n as_o to_o himself_o and_o be_v to_o be_v execute_v by_o they_o successive_o after_o his_o death_n unto_o the_o world_n end_n as_o careful_o and_o diligent_o as_o he_o himself_o whilst_o he_o live_v have_v put_v they_o in_o practice_n ibid._n one_o of_o the_o say_a father_n do_v write_v as_o follow_v with_o great_a vigilancy_n and_o providence_n do_v the_o apostle_n give_v precept_n to_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n for_o in_o his_o person_n do_v the_o safety_n of_o the_o people_n consist_v he_o be_v not_o so_o circumspect_a as_o fear_v timothy_n care_n but_o for_o his_o successor_n that_o after_o timothy_n example_n they_o shall_v observe_v the_o ordination_n of_o the_o church_n and_o begin_v themselves_o to_o keep_v that_o form_n which_o they_o be_v to_o deliver_v to_o those_o that_o come_v after_o they_o again_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n that_o not_o only_a st._n james_n timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v make_v bishop_n by_o the_o apostle_n 35._o but_o that_o likewise_o peter_n himself_o be_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n so_o term_v because_o of_o his_o long_a stay_n there_o 3._o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n likewise_o make_v evodius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n after_o st._n peter_n 23._o and_o st._n mark_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o polycarpus_n bishop_n of_o smyrna_n and_o that_o st._n john_n return_v from_o patmos_n to_o ephesus_n go_v to_o the_o church_n round_o about_o and_o make_v bishop_n in_o those_o place_n where_o they_o be_v want_v and_o also_o that_o divers_a other_o of_o the_o apostle_n coadjutor_n beside_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v make_v by_o they_o bishop_n and_o do_v govern_v the_o city_n and_o province_n where_o they_o be_v place_v according_a to_o the_o same_o rule_n that_o be_v prescribe_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n 4._o as_o dionysius_n the_o areopagite_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o athens_n caius_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n archippus_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o colossian_n and_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o many_o more_o by_o diligent_a read_n may_v be_v find_v that_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n make_v bishop_n furthermore_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o antiquity_n father_n and_o ecclesiastical_a history_n that_o all_o the_o church_n in_o christendom_n that_o be_v plant_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o such_o their_o coadjutor_n apostolical_a person_n as_o unto_o who_o the_o apostle_n have_v to_o that_o end_n full_o communicate_v their_o apostolical_a authority_n do_v think_v that_o after_o the_o death_n either_o of_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n which_o rule_v among_o they_o or_o of_o any_o other_o the_o say_a bishop_n ordain_v by_o they_o it_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n testify_v sufficient_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o same_o order_n and_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n shall_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o and_o therefore_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o any_o of_o they_o either_o apostle_n or_o bishop_n they_o the_o say_a church_n do_v always_o supply_v their_o place_n with_o other_o the_o most_o worthy_a and_o eminent_a person_n among_o they_o who_o with_o the_o like_a power_n and_o authority_n that_o their_o predecessor_n have_v do_v ever_o succeed_v they_o insomuch_o as_o in_o every_o city_n and_o episcopal_n see_v where_o there_o be_v divers_a priest_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o but_o one_o bishop_n only_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o name_n not_o of_o their_o priest_n but_o of_o their_o bishop_n be_v very_o careful_o keep_v from_o time_n to_o time_n together_o with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a person_n the_o bishop_n their_o predecessor_n from_o who_o they_o derive_v their_o succession_n of_o which_o succession_n of_o bishop_n whilst_o the_o succession_n of_o truth_n continue_v with_o it_o the_o ancient_a father_n make_v great_a account_n and_o use_v when_o any_o false_a teacher_n do_v broach_v new_a doctrine_n as_o if_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o same_o from_o the_o apostle_n choke_v they_o with_o this_o that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o show_v any_o apostolical_a church_n that_o ever_o teach_v as_o they_o do_v 3._o upon_o such_o a_o occasion_n irenaeus_n bishop_n of_o lion_n within_o 75._o year_n or_o thereabouts_o after_o st._n john_n death_n do_v write_v in_o this_o sort_n habemus_fw-la annumerare_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n instituti_fw-la sunt_fw-la episcopi_fw-la in_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la &_o successores_fw-la eorum_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la haeres_fw-la qui_fw-la nihil_fw-la tale_n docuerunt_fw-la neque_fw-la cognoverunt_fw-la quale_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la deliratur_fw-la and_o so_o likewise_o not_o long_o after_o he_o tertullian_n to_o oppress_v some_o who_o as_o it_o seem_v draw_v company_n after_o they_o say_v thus_o edant_fw-la origines_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la evolvant_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la suorum_fw-la ita_fw-la per_fw-la successiones_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la decurrentem_fw-la ut_fw-la primus_fw-la ille_fw-la episcopus_fw-la aliquem_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolis_n aut_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la viris_fw-la qui_fw-la tamen_fw-la cum_fw-la apostolis_n perseveraverit_fw-la habuerit_fw-la autorem_fw-la &_o antecessorem_fw-la hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la modo_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la sensus_fw-la suos_fw-la deferunt_fw-la 24._o and_o st._n augustin_n radix_fw-la christianae_n societatis_fw-la per_fw-la sedes_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la &_o successores_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la certâ_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la propagatione_fw-la diffunditur_fw-la again_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v think_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o best_a mean_n for_o the_o building_n and_o continue_v of_o his_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o ordain_v sundry_a degree_n of_o minister_n in_o dignity_n and_o authority_n one_o over_o another_o when_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o pre-eminence_n may_v have_v be_v think_v not_o so_o necessary_a because_o the_o apostle_n by_o work_v of_o miracle_n may_v otherwise_o as_o it_o be_v probable_a have_v procure_v to_o themselves_o sufficient_a authority_n how_o can_v it_o with_o any_o reason_n be_v imagine_v but_o that_o christ_n much_o more_o do_v mean_a to_o have_v the_o same_o still_o to_o be_v continue_v after_o the_o apostle_n day_n when_o the_o gift_n of_o do_v miracle_n be_v to_o cease_v and_o when_o man_n zeal_n be_v like_a to_o grow_v more_o cold_a than_o it_o be_v at_o the_o first_o it_o savour_v assure_o we_o know_v of_o what_o faction_n indiscretion_n or_o affection_n for_o any_o man_n either_o to_o think_v that_o form_n of_o church-government_n to_o be_v unfit_a for_o our_o time_n
that_o be_v hold_v necessary_a for_o the_o apostle_n time_n or_o that_o order_n so_o much_o commend_v among_o all_o man_n and_o be_v most_o proper_o term_v parium_n dispariumque_fw-la rerum_fw-la sua_fw-la cuique_fw-la loca_fw-la tribuens_fw-la dispositio_fw-la shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o build_v the_o church_n but_o unfit_a to_o preserve_v it_o or_o that_o the_o same_o artisan_n that_o be_v most_o meet_a to_o build_v this_o or_o that_o house_n be_v not_o the_o fit_a both_o to_o keep_v the_o same_o in_o good_a reparation_n and_o likewise_o to_o build_v other_o house_n when_o there_o be_v cause_n no_o man_n can_v doubt_v who_o be_v of_o any_o read_n but_o that_o when_o the_o apostle_n die_v there_o be_v many_o defect_n in_o many_o church_n and_o that_o likewise_o there_o be_v a_o number_n of_o place_n in_o the_o world_n where_o the_o apostle_n have_v never_o be_v and_o where_o there_o be_v no_o church_n plant_v or_o establish_v whereupon_o it_o follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o if_o the_o say_a form_n of_o government_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n be_v then_o necessary_a for_o the_o plant_n and_o order_v of_o church_n that_o the_o same_o do_v continue_v to_o be_v as_o necessary_a afterward_o for_o the_o supply_n of_o such_o defect_n as_o be_v leave_v in_o some_o church_n and_o for_o the_o plant_n and_o order_v of_o other_o church_n in_o those_o place_n that_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o gospel_n whilst_o the_o apostle_n live_v and_o to_o this_o purpose_n it_o do_v much_o avail_n that_o for_o aught_o we_o can_v find_v there_o can_v no_o one_o nation_n or_o country_n be_v name_v since_o the_o apostle_n day_n neither_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n nor_o since_o but_o when_o it_o first_o receive_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n it_o have_v thereupon_o both_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n place_v in_o it_o for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v there_o plant_v imitate_v therein_o for_o their_o more_o certain_a direction_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v erect_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v be_v deduce_v from_o they_o agreeable_a in_o substance_n with_o the_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n that_o be_v once_o among_o god_n own_o people_n the_o jew_n which_o be_v no_o new_a conceit_n among_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o it_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o one_o of_o they_o evagr._fw-la who_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n may_v challenge_v now_o that_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n which_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n and_o the_o levite_n have_v in_o time_n past_a and_o that_o the_o apostle_n in_o establish_v of_o their_o government_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v respect_n to_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o old_a for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v the_o essential_a part_n of_o that_o priesthood_n moreover_o the_o primitive_a church_n present_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n find_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n no_o one_o person_n to_o have_v be_v ordain_v a_o priest_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n mediate_o by_o man_n but_o either_o by_o imposition_n of_o the_o apostle_n hand_n or_o of_o their_o hand_n to_o who_o they_o give_v authority_n in_o that_o behalf_n as_o unto_o timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o such_o other_o bishop_n as_o they_o be_v and_o know_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v never_o be_v leave_v destitute_a of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n they_o dare_v not_o presume_v upon_o their_o own_o head_n to_o devise_v a_o new_a form_n of_o make_v of_o minister_n nor_o to_o commit_v that_o authority_n unto_o any_o other_o after_o their_o own_o fancy_n but_o hold_v it_o their_o bind_a duty_n to_o leave_v the_o same_o where_o they_o find_v it_o viz._n in_o the_o hand_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o consequent_o of_o other_o bishop_n their_o successor_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v very_o necessary_o that_o none_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o ancient_a father_n do_v ever_o so_o much_o as_o once_o dream_v that_o the_o authority_n give_v by_o st._n paul_n to_o timothy_n and_o to_o titus_n and_o to_o the_o rest_n who_o be_v then_o make_v bishop_n as_o well_o for_o the_o order_n of_o priest_n as_o for_o the_o further_a order_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n do_v determine_v by_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n consider_v that_o present_o after_o as_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o be_v and_o live_v and_o ever_o since_o till_o very_o late_o it_o be_v hold_v by_o they_o altogether_o unlawful_a for_o any_o to_o ordain_v a_o priest_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n except_o he_o be_v himself_o a_o bishop_n and_o no_o one_o approve_a example_n for_o the_o space_n of_o above_o 1500._o year_n can_v be_v show_v for_o aught_o we_o find_v to_o the_o contrary_n it_o be_v true_a that_o one_o coluthus_n be_v himself_o but_o a_o priest_n will_v needs_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o make_v priest_n in_o spleen_n against_o his_o own_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n with_o who_o he_o be_v then_o fall_v at_o variance_n and_o that_o the_o like_a attempt_n be_v make_v by_o one_o maximus_n suppose_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v a_o bishop_n where_o he_o be_v indeed_o but_o a_o priest_n as_o it_o be_v decide_v by_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n howbeit_o such_o their_o ordination_n be_v account_v void_a and_o utter_o condemn_v as_o unlawful_a they_o themselves_o not_o escape_v such_o just_a reproof_n as_o so_o great_a a_o novelty_n and_o presumption_n do_v deserve_v we_o acknowledge_v that_o for_o the_o great_a dignity_n of_o the_o action_n of_o ordination_n it_o be_v decree_v by_o another_o council_n that_o priest_n shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n with_o the_o bishop_n upon_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v make_v priest_n but_o they_o have_v not_o thereby_o any_o power_n of_o ordination_n but_o only_o do_v it_o to_o testify_v their_o consent_n thereunto_o and_o likewise_o to_o concur_v in_o the_o blessing_n of_o he_o neither_o may_v they_o ever_o in_o that_o sort_n impose_v their_o hand_n upon_o any_o without_o their_o bishop_n again_o the_o say_v primitive_a church_n and_o ancient_a father_n find_v how_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v ordain_v bishop_n timothy_n titus_n and_o such_o like_a for_o the_o order_n and_o appease_v of_o such_o quarrel_n and_o contention_n as_o arise_v among_o the_o minister_n and_o people_n for_o want_v of_o some_o among_o they_o of_o authority_n to_o govern_v they_o they_o may_v thereby_o have_v be_v confirm_v more_o and_o more_o in_o their_o judgement_n if_o at_o any_o time_n they_o have_v doubt_v of_o it_o concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o that_o apostolical_a form_n of_o government_n that_o it_o be_v for_o ever_o to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n the_o schism_n and_o contentious_a person_n may_v be_v still_o by_o the_o same_o mean_n suppress_v that_o they_o be_v whilst_o the_o apostle_n live_v for_o they_o ever_o observe_v what_o the_o want_n of_o bishop_n will_v work_v in_o the_o church_n and_o how_o the_o contempt_n of_o they_o and_o disobedience_n to_o their_o direction_n be_v always_o a_o chief_a cause_n of_o sect_n and_o schism_n which_o make_v they_o easy_o to_o discern_v that_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o provide_v for_o the_o continuance_n of_o their_o apostolical_a authority_n in_o bishop_n who_o be_v to_o succeed_v they_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n but_o have_v leave_v a_o equality_n in_o the_o clergy_n that_o every_o one_o may_v have_v proceed_v in_o his_o own_o particular_a church_n after_o his_o own_o fashion_n there_o will_v have_v be_v nothing_o in_o the_o church_n but_o disorder_n scandal_n sect_n schism_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o confusion_n one_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n perceive_v in_o his_o time_n what_o pride_n and_o contempt_n certain_a unstaid_a and_o contentious_a person_n show_v towards_o their_o archbishop_n do_v lay_v it_o upon_o they_o as_o a_o property_n of_o heretic_n and_o fear_v not_o to_o compare_v they_o to_o the_o devil_n these_o be_v his_o word_n quilibet_fw-la haereticus_fw-la etc._n etc._n loquens_fw-la cum_fw-la pontifice_fw-la nec_fw-la eum_fw-la vocat_fw-la pontificem_fw-la nec_fw-la archiepiscopum_fw-la nec_fw-la religiosissimum_fw-la nec_fw-la sanctum_fw-la sed_fw-la quid_fw-la reverentia_fw-la tua_fw-la &_o nomina_fw-la illi_fw-la adducit_fw-la communia_fw-la ejus_fw-la negans_fw-la autoritatem_fw-la diabolus_fw-la hoc_fw-la tum_fw-la fecit_fw-la in_o deo_fw-la ero_n similis_fw-la altissimo_fw-la non_fw-la deo_fw-la sed_fw-la altissimo_fw-la and_o another_o father_n long_o before_o the_o day_n of_o the_o former_a do_v according_o observe_v that_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n do_v usual_o spring_v from_o no_o other_o fountain_n 3._o but_o he_o quod_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la obtemperatur_fw-la nec_fw-la unus_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la ad_fw-la tempus_fw-la sacerdos_n &_o ad_fw-la tempus_fw-la judex_n vice_fw-la christi_fw-la cogitatur_fw
that_o the_o priest_n of_o god_n mean_v every_o such_o bishop_n as_o he_o himself_o be_v in_o his_o own_o diocese_n be_v not_o obey_v nor_o one_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n acknowledge_v for_o the_o time_n to_o be_v judge_n in_o christ_n stead_n 8._o and_o again_o vnde_fw-la schismata_fw-la &_o haereses_fw-la abortae_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o oriuntur_fw-la nisi_fw-la dum_fw-la episcopus_fw-la qui_fw-la unus_fw-la est_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la praeest_fw-la superbâ_fw-la quorundam_fw-la praesumptione_n contemnitur_fw-la whence_o have_v schism_n and_o heresy_n spring_v up_o and_o do_v spring_n but_o whilst_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v one_o and_o rule_v the_o church_n be_v by_o the_o proud_a presumption_n of_o certain_a man_n despise_v a_o three_o father_n also_o though_o at_o some_o time_n he_o have_v a_o sharp_a tooth_n against_o bishop_n as_o they_o carry_v themselves_o in_o his_o time_n do_v confess_v nevertheless_o that_o when_o schism_n first_o begin_v bishop_n be_v ordain_v ut_fw-la schismatum_fw-la semina_fw-la tollerentur_fw-la and_o in_o another_o place_n in_o remedium_fw-la schismatis_fw-la ne_fw-la unusquisque_fw-la ad_fw-la se_fw-la trahens_fw-la christi_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la rumperet_fw-la also_o where_o the_o same_o father_n do_v write_v against_o the_o luciferian_o adv_fw-la and_o undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o bishop_n in_o a_o right_a point_n luciferianos_fw-la untrue_o by_o they_o impugned_a he_o speak_v of_o their_o authority_n within_o their_o several_a diocese_n after_o this_o sort_n ecclesiae_fw-la salus_fw-la in_o summi_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la dignitate_fw-la pendet_fw-la cui_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la exhort_v quaedam_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la hominibus_fw-la eminens_fw-la detur_fw-la potestas_fw-la tot_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la efficientur_fw-la schismata_fw-la quot_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la that_o be_v the_o safety_n of_o the_o church_n do_v consist_v in_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o chief_a priest_n unto_o who_o if_o a_o extraordinary_a and_o eminent_a power_n from_o other_o man_n be_v not_o yield_v there_o will_v be_v as_o many_o schism_n in_o church_n as_o there_o be_v priest_n last_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o roman_a empire_n have_v wrought_v a_o great_a confusion_n in_o all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o country_n about_o it_o whilst_o in_o the_o greediness_n of_o honour_n in_o that_o state_n they_o have_v subdue_v their_o neighbour_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o turn_v their_o kingdom_n and_o principality_n into_o province_n and_o consulship_n and_o divers_a other_o such_o like_a form_n of_o regiment_n leave_v the_o same_o to_o the_o government_n of_o their_o own_o substitute_n to_o who_o they_o give_v sundry_a and_o different_a title_n which_o course_n hold_v by_o that_o state_n cause_v the_o apostle_n in_o their_o plant_n of_o church_n when_o they_o can_v not_o perform_v that_o which_o otherwise_o they_o will_v have_v do_v to_o frame_v their_o proceed_n as_o near_o unto_o it_o as_o they_o can_v in_o the_o chief_a city_n which_o have_v be_v head_n of_o so_o many_o kingdom_n and_o be_v still_o the_o seat_n then_o of_o the_o principal_a roman_a officer_n principal_a person_n be_v place_v who_o be_v bishop_n and_o more_o than_o bishop_n as_o st._n james_n at_o jerusalem_n although_o jerusalem_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o see_v of_o st._n james_n be_v not_o the_o metropolitan_a seat_n or_o archbishopric_n of_o that_o province_n but_o caesarea_n who_o right_a be_v save_v in_o the_o give_v that_o honour_n to_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n st._n peter_n first_o in_o antioch_n and_o then_o in_o rome_n and_o st._n mark_v in_o alexandria_n who_o remain_v in_o those_o place_n as_o be_v then_o most_o behooveful_a for_o those_o church_n as_o so_o many_o principal_a archbishop_n patriarch_n to_o rule_v and_o direct_v all_o the_o bishop_n priest_n and_o christian_n in_o palestine_n syria_n italy_n and_o egypt_n and_o in_o other_o city_n also_o and_o country_n not_o so_o famous_a then_o as_o the_o say_v four_o there_o be_v appoint_v according_a to_o the_o largeness_n of_o their_o extent_n in_o some_o bishop_n to_o govern_v the_o minister_n which_o be_v in_o such_o city_n and_o in_o some_o other_o such_o as_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v who_o as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n have_v the_o oversight_n commit_v unto_o they_o as_o well_o of_o bishop_n as_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n within_o their_o limit_n all_o which_o particular_n so_o put_v in_o practice_n by_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o well_o know_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o ancient_a godly_a father_n that_o live_v the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o give_v they_o full_a assurance_n that_o they_o may_v lawful_o pursue_v in_o those_o day_n that_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v erect_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o time_n remain_v still_o one_o and_o the_o same_o that_o it_o be_v when_o the_o apostle_n live_v whereupon_o by_o their_o example_n they_o do_v not_o only_o continue_v the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n in_o those_o place_n where_o the_o apostle_n have_v settle_v they_o supply_v other_o church_n either_o not_o thorough_o settle_v or_o not_o at_o all_o plant_v when_o the_o apostle_n die_v as_o before_o have_v be_v mention_v with_o the_o like_a church-governor_n but_o do_v likewise_o preserve_v and_o uphold_v in_o those_o part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o christianity_n do_v then_o chief_o flourish_v the_o succession_n of_o patriarchal_a archbishop_n in_o the_o abovementioned_a four_o most_o principal_a city_n jerusalem_n antioch_n rome_n and_o alexandria_n insomuch_o as_o it_o be_v common_o hold_v that_o this_o apostolical_a order_n be_v thus_o distribute_v and_o settle_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n long_o before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o that_o then_o in_o that_o holy_a assembly_n it_o be_v only_o but_o so_o acknowledge_v and_o continue_v idque_fw-la ad_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la conservationem_fw-la calvin_n as_o a_o very_a worthy_a man_n have_v observe_v the_o consideration_n of_o all_o which_o particular_a point_n concern_v the_o place_n of_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n in_o the_o territory_n of_o the_o roman_n according_a to_o the_o dignity_n and_o chief_a honour_n of_o the_o city_n and_o country_n where_o they_o be_v place_v do_v very_o thorough_o persuade_v we_o that_o as_o we_o observe_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n if_o all_o the_o say_a kingdom_n and_o sovereign_a principality_n then_o in_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a empire_n have_v be_v free_v of_o that_o servitude_n and_o govern_v by_o their_o own_o king_n and_o prince_n as_o they_o have_v be_v before_o the_o apostle_n though_o the_o say_v king_n and_o prince_n have_v refuse_v to_o receive_v the_o gospel_n will_v notwithstanding_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v have_v settle_v in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n there_o the_o like_a form_n that_o god_n himself_o do_v erect_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o they_o themselves_o do_v establish_v in_o their_o time_n in_o the_o like_o heathenish_a place_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a that_o be_v in_o every_o such_o kingdom_n minister_n in_o particular_a church_n or_o congregation_n bishop_n over_o minister_n and_o archbishop_n to_o oversee_v and_o direct_v they_o all_o and_o assure_o if_o when_o christian_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n do_v free_v themselves_o from_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o empire_n they_o have_v either_o know_v or_o regard_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n within_o their_o kingdom_n and_o principality_n they_o will_v have_v be_v as_o careful_a to_o have_v deliver_v their_o church_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o they_o be_v their_o kingdom_n from_o subjection_n to_o the_o empire_n for_o all_o that_o be_v common_o allege_v to_o the_o contrary_a be_v but_o the_o fume_n of_o presumptuous_a brain_n the_o chief_a archbishop_n either_o in_o france_n or_o spain_n have_v as_o full_a power_n and_o authority_n under_o their_o sovereign_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v in_o time_n pass_v over_o italy_n under_o their_o emperor_n and_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n they_o ought_v to_o depend_v no_o more_o upon_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n than_o they_o do_v now_o one_o upon_o the_o other_o or_o than_o the_o archbishop_n of_o england_n under_o their_o most_o worthy_a sovereign_n do_v depend_v upon_o any_o of_o they_o as_o it_o will_v hereafter_o more_o plain_o we_o hope_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o we_o have_v to_o say_v of_o that_o infinite_a authority_n which_o the_o pope_n do_v vain_o challenge_v to_o himself_o can._n vii_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o the_o subscription_n or_o direction_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o st._n paul_n to_o
timothy_n of_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o titus_n though_o they_o be_v find_v in_o the_o ancient_a copy_n of_o the_o greek_a testament_n be_v of_o no_o credit_n or_o authority_n or_o that_o such_o a_o impeachment_n and_o discredit_v lay_v upon_o they_o be_v not_o very_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o book_n and_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o great_a presumption_n for_o man_n in_o these_o day_n to_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o know_v better_o whether_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n than_o the_o church_n and_o godly_a father_n do_v which_o be_v plant_v and_o live_v either_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n or_o present_o after_o they_o except_o they_o have_v some_o especial_a revelation_n from_o god_n or_o that_o whilst_o man_n do_v labour_n to_o bring_v into_o discredit_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o primitive_a church_n they_o do_v not_o derogate_v from_o themselves_o such_o credit_n as_o they_o hunt_v after_o and_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v bring_v many_o part_n of_o religion_n into_o a_o wonderful_a uncertainty_n or_o that_o it_o be_v probable_a or_o be_v possible_a for_o timothy_n to_o have_v observe_v those_o rule_n that_o st._n paul_n give_v he_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n except_o as_o the_o father_n expound_v some_o of_o they_o he_o mean_v to_o have_v they_o first_o observe_v by_o himself_o and_o other_o bishop_n in_o that_o age_n and_o that_o afterward_o they_o shall_v so_o likewise_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o bishop_n for_o ever_o or_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o ecclesiastical_a history_n when_o they_o record_v it_o to_o all_o posterity_n that_o these_o man_n and_o those_o man_n be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n bishop_n of_o such_o and_o such_o place_n be_v not_o to_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v of_o more_o credit_n than_o any_o other_o historiographer_n or_o writer_n or_o that_o when_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o continuance_n for_o ever_o of_o that_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o be_v then_o in_o use_n they_o be_v not_o so_o thorough_o illuminate_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o divers_a man_n of_o late_o have_v be_v or_o that_o it_o be_v a_o idle_a course_n hold_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o ancient_a father_n to_o keep_v the_o catalogue_n of_o their_o bishop_n or_o to_o ground_n argument_n in_o some_o case_n upon_o their_o succession_n in_o that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o deduce_v their_o beginning_n either_o from_o the_o apostle_n or_o from_o some_o apostolical_a person_n or_o that_o the_o form_n of_o government_n use_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o plant_n and_o order_v of_o church_n be_v not_o in_o many_o respect_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n afterward_o especial_o consider_v that_o many_o church_n be_v not_o leave_v full_o order_v nor_o in_o some_o place_n be_v at_o all_o plant_v when_o the_o apostle_n die_v or_o that_o true_a and_o perfect_a order_n ground_v upon_o the_o very_a law_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n and_o establish_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v not_o fit_a for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n afterward_o to_o embrace_v and_o observe_v or_o that_o any_o church_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o of_o late_a year_n when_o it_o receive_v the_o gospel_n have_v not_o likewise_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n for_o the_o government_n of_o it_o or_o that_o divers_a of_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v not_o hold_v and_o that_o very_o true_o for_o aught_o that_o appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o establish_v the_o form_n of_o church-government_n among_o the_o gentile_n have_v a_o especial_a respect_n to_o that_o form_n which_o god_n have_v settle_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o do_v no_o way_n purpose_n to_o abrogate_v or_o abolish_v it_o or_o that_o any_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o of_o late_a day_n be_v ever_o hold_v to_o be_v a_o lawful_a minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n who_o be_v not_o ordain_v priest_n or_o minister_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o some_o bishop_n or_o that_o it_o be_v with_o any_o probability_n to_o be_v imagine_v that_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o ancient_a father_n from_o the_o beginning_n will_v ever_o have_v hold_v it_o for_o a_o apostolical_a rule_n that_o none_o but_o bishop_n have_v any_o authority_n to_o make_v priest_n have_v they_o not_o think_v and_o judge_v that_o the_o same_o authority_n have_v be_v derive_v unto_o they_o the_o say_v bishop_n from_o the_o same_o apostolical_a ordination_n that_o be_v commit_v unto_o timothy_n and_o titus_n their_o predecessor_n or_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v deceive_v when_o they_o judge_v the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n necessary_a at_o all_o time_n for_o the_o suppress_n of_o schism_n and_o that_o without_o bishop_n there_o will_v be_v in_o the_o church_n as_o many_o sect_n as_o minister_n or_o that_o when_o man_n find_v themselves_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o disobedience_n to_o their_o bishop_n so_o full_o and_o notable_o describe_v and_o censure_v by_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o schismatic_n and_o contentious_a person_n they_o have_v not_o just_a cause_n to_o fear_v their_o own_o estate_n if_o they_o continue_v in_o such_o their_o wilfulness_n and_o obstinacy_n or_o that_o the_o church-government_n by_o we_o above_o treat_v of_o be_v true_o to_o be_v say_v to_o savour_n of_o judaisme_n more_o than_o the_o observation_n by_o godly_a king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o equity_n of_o the_o judicial_a law_n give_v to_o the_o jew_n may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o savour_v thereof_o or_o that_o it_o do_v proceed_v from_o any_o other_o than_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n for_o any_o sort_n of_o man_n what_o godly_a show_n soever_o they_o can_v pretend_v to_o seek_v to_o discredit_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v that_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o leave_v by_o they_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n under_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n such_o as_o be_v timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o some_o other_o then_o call_v to_o those_o office_n by_o the_o say_a apostle_n and_o ever_o since_o hold_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o be_v apostolical_a function_n or_o to_o term_v the_o same_o or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o to_o be_v antichristian_a he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n ix_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n upon_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n do_v not_o commit_v the_o temporal_a government_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n unto_o st._n peter_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o whole_a ministry_n do_v succeed_v christ_n not_o as_o he_o be_v a_o person_n immortal_a and_o glorious_a after_o his_o resurrection_n but_o as_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n here_o upon_o the_o earth_n before_o his_o passion_n that_o christ_n leave_v neither_o to_o st._n peter_n nor_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o to_o any_o other_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n any_o temporal_a possession_n all_o that_o since_o any_o of_o they_o have_v get_v be_v bestow_v upon_o they_o by_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o other_o their_o good_a benefactor_n and_o that_o the_o imagination_n of_o st._n peter_n temporal_a sovereignty_n be_v very_o idle_a the_o same_o be_v never_o know_v unto_o himself_o for_o aught_o that_o appear_v and_o argue_v great_a ignorance_n of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o erect_n whereof_o the_o spiritual_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v and_o be_v only_o necessary_a it_o have_v be_v show_v by_o we_o before_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n become_v actual_o in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o king_n of_o king_n even_o as_o he_o be_v man_n his_o divine_a nature_n work_v more_o glorious_o in_o his_o humanity_n than_o former_o it_o have_v do_v howbeit_o although_o we_o also_o make_v it_o plain_a that_o notwithstanding_o the_o say_a glory_n power_n rule_n dominion_n and_o majesty_n wherewith_o christ_n be_v real_o possess_v sit_v in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n he_o make_v no_o alteration_n in_o the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o temporal_a government_n but_o leave_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n under_o he_o as_o it_o have_v be_v before_o himself_o retain_v still_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o sceptre_n and_o chief_a ensign_n of_o royal_a and_o high_a majesty_n to_o direct_v and_o
sovereign_n either_o for_o their_o cruelty_n heresy_n or_o apostasy_n be_v ever_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n abovemention_v during_o the_o reign_n of_o dioclesian_n or_o julian_n the_o apostate_n or_o valens_n the_o arrian_n or_o of_o any_o other_o the_o wicked_a emperor_n before_o they_o or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o wicked_a pervert_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n to_o the_o corinthian_n touch_v their_o choice_n of_o arbitrator_n to_o end_v dissension_n among_o themselves_o rather_o than_o draw_v their_o brethren_n before_o judge_n that_o be_v infidel_n to_o infer_v thereof_o either_o that_o st._n paul_n intend_v thereby_o to_o impeach_v in_o any_o sort_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n as_o if_o he_o have_v mean_v they_o shall_v have_v choose_v such_o judge_n as_o by_o civil_a authority_n may_v otherwise_o have_v bind_v they_o than_o by_o their_o own_o consent_n to_o have_v stand_v to_o their_o award_n or_o to_o authorise_v christian_a subject_n when_o they_o be_v able_a to_o thrust_v their_o lawful_a sovereign_n from_o their_o regal_a seat_n and_o to_o choose_v unto_o themselves_o new_a king_n into_o their_o place_n or_o that_o any_o of_o the_o say_v ancient_a father_n or_o godly_a learned_a man_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n do_v ever_o so_o gross_o and_o irreligious_o expound_v the_o say_a place_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o our_o cardinalize_v jesuit_n have_v do_v or_o that_o it_o can_v be_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o either_o christ_n or_o any_o of_o his_o apostle_n do_v at_o any_o time_n teach_v or_o preach_v that_o they_o who_o mean_v to_o be_v baptise_a must_v receive_v that_o sacrament_n upon_o condition_n that_o if_o at_o any_o time_n afterward_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v obedient_a to_o st._n peter_n for_o his_o time_n and_o to_o his_o successor_n they_o be_v to_o lose_v and_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o their_o temporal_a estate_n and_o possession_n or_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v either_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o by_o any_o of_o the_o say_v ancient_a father_n or_o show_v in_o any_o ancient_a form_n of_o administration_n of_o baptism_n that_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o such_o covenant_n make_v by_o any_o such_o faithful_a person_n when_o they_o be_v baptise_a or_o require_v of_o they_o to_o be_v make_v by_o any_o that_o baptise_a they_o or_o that_o if_o such_o a_o covenant_n be_v by_o christ_n ordinance_n to_o be_v make_v in_o baptism_n it_o ought_v not_o as_o well_o to_o be_v make_v by_o farmer_n by_o gentleman_n possess_v of_o manor_n and_o by_o lord_n of_o great_a revenue_n and_o possession_n as_o by_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o absurd_a imagination_n to_o think_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v only_o mean_a that_o emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n shall_v be_v receive_v to_o baptism_n upon_o the_o say_a condition_n or_o that_o all_o christian_a man_n ought_v not_o to_o judge_v that_o the_o eleven_o apostle_n if_o they_o have_v know_v of_o any_o such_o bargain_n or_o condition_n in_o baptism_n will_v have_v deal_v as_o faithful_o with_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o st._n peter_n in_o preach_v and_o teach_v the_o same_o as_o now_o our_o cardinal_n and_o other_o such_o like_a person_n of_o the_o roman_a strain_n do_v by_o their_o write_n publish_v and_o maintain_v of_o it_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o either_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n know_v that_o baptism_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o such_o a_o condition_n do_v think_v it_o convenient_a that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v conceal_v not_o only_o whilst_o they_o live_v but_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n afterward_o until_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v grow_v to_o such_o a_o head_n and_o strength_n as_o that_o they_o may_v without_o fear_n of_o any_o inconvenience_n make_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n acquaint_v with_o it_o or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o idle_a conceit_n for_o any_o man_n to_o maintain_v that_o the_o renunciation_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o baptism_n do_v deprive_v man_n of_o their_o temporal_a land_n and_o possession_n which_o they_o do_v not_o hold_v by_o any_o force_n of_o baptism_n or_o make_v they_o subject_a in_o that_o behalf_n to_o the_o deprivation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o apostasy_n from_o christ_n put_v on_o in_o baptism_n do_v any_o further_o extend_v itself_o than_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o such_o apostate_n in_o this_o life_n in_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v get_v again_o the_o possession_n of_o they_o and_o so_o deprive_v they_o in_o this_o world_n of_o all_o the_o comfort_n and_o hope_v they_o have_v in_o christ_n lead_v they_o on_o to_o the_o bane_n both_o of_o their_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v or_o that_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n have_v any_o other_o lawful_a mean_n to_o reclaim_v wicked_a heretical_a or_o apostated_a king_n from_o their_o impiety_n heresy_n and_o apostasy_n than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v ordain_v to_o be_v use_v for_o win_a man_n at_o the_o first_o to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n or_o that_o christ_n himself_o while_o he_o live_v do_v attempt_v either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o to_o depose_v the_o emperor_n by_o who_o authority_n he_o be_v himself_o put_v to_o death_n as_o hold_v that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n except_o he_o have_v so_o do_v or_o that_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o church_n do_v not_o attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n without_o the_o deposition_n of_o any_o emperor_n or_o king_n from_o their_o regal_a estate_n or_o that_o ever_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o day_n either_o preach_v or_o write_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n can_v not_o be_v perfect_a except_o st._n peter_n for_o his_o time_n and_o after_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o depose_v emperor_n and_o king_n that_o the_o church_n may_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n or_o that_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n do_v not_o attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n although_o no_o such_o authority_n be_v then_o either_o challenge_v or_o put_v in_o practice_n or_o that_o the_o church_n can_v have_v attain_v to_o that_o her_o spiritual_a end_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o the_o say_v temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n have_v be_v then_o necessary_a for_o the_o attain_n of_o it_o or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v propound_v a_o spiritual_a end_n unto_o his_o church_n and_o leave_v no_o other_o necessary_a mean_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o it_o than_o such_o as_o can_v not_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n either_o in_o their_o day_n or_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o or_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 300._o year_n be_v wonderful_o oppress_v with_o sundry_a persecution_n do_v not_o attain_v to_o their_o spiritual_a end_n without_o this_o dream_v off_o temporal_a authority_n of_o depose_v king_n and_o emperor_n than_o their_o mortal_a enemy_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o but_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n which_o they_o teach_v to_o their_o subject_n or_o that_o this_o new_a doctrine_n of_o the_o necessity_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v temporal_a authority_n either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o to_o depose_v emperor_n and_o king_n for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o or_o that_o else_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n be_v ever_o hear_v of_o for_o aught_o that_o appear_v for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n either_o in_o any_o ecclesiastical_a history_n or_o in_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n by_o we_o abovemention_v or_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o all_o their_o adherent_n whilst_o they_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n can_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n except_o they_o have_v temporal_a authority_n indirect_o to_o depose_v for_o some_o cause_n emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n be_v more_o learned_a now_o than_o either_o the_o ancient_a father_n or_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v and_o that_o they_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n better_a than_o either_o they_o the_o say_v ancient_a father_n do_v or_o the_o apostle_n that_o write_v they_o who_o for_o aught_o that_o be_v know_v for_o many_o hundred_o year_n never_o preach_v teach_v or_o intend_v to_o have_v any_o such_o doctrine_n collect_v out_o of_o their_o write_n and_o work_n or_o that_o it_o may_v without_o great_a impiety_n be_v once_o imagine_v that_o if_o such_o a_o necessary_a point_n of_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o say_v
great_a temporal_a power_n in_o the_o pope_n over_o prince_n as_o without_o the_o which_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n have_v be_v know_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n they_o will_v not_o have_v be_v as_o careful_a and_o zealous_a to_o have_v preach_v and_o divulge_v the_o same_o unto_o all_o posterity_n as_o now_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o adherent_n be_v or_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o rather_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o adherent_n through_o their_o forsake_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v give_v over_o by_o god_n unto_o those_o strong_a illusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n and_o maintain_v they_o as_o stiff_o as_o though_o they_o be_v true_a than_o once_o to_o conceive_v that_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n be_v either_o ignorant_a of_o this_o suppose_a temporal_a authority_n to_o depose_v king_n and_o prince_n for_o the_o end_n so_o often_o mention_v or_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o dissemble_v it_o or_o to_o write_v of_o it_o so_o dark_o as_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n it_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v or_o that_o god_n have_v not_o wonderful_o blind_v the_o heart_n and_o understanding_n both_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o their_o adherent_n in_o this_o particular_a matter_n among_o many_o other_o in_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n and_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n consider_v they_o dare_v presume_v to_o maintain_v it_o so_o confident_o that_o the_o say_v spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n can_v attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o temporal_a authority_n indirect_o in_o some_o case_n to_o depose_v king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o that_o the_o true_a spiritual_a end_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v banish_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o her_o true_a member_n christ_n may_v retain_v his_o possession_n of_o they_o through_o their_o faith_n and_o diligence_n to_o repel_v satan_n who_o daily_o labour_v to_o regain_v to_o himself_o his_o own_o possession_n it_o be_v not_o more_o than_o a_o kind_n of_o frenzy_n to_o hold_v and_o maintain_v that_o any_o temporal_a authority_n manage_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o by_o his_o commandment_n against_o king_n and_o prince_n have_v any_o force_n or_o power_n to_o work_v or_o procure_v this_o spiritual_a end_n either_o by_o expelling_a or_o repel_v of_o satan_n or_o to_o nourish_v faith_n or_o to_o continue_v the_o reign_v of_o christ_n in_o any_o man_n heart_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o impious_a and_o a_o profane_a assertion_n for_o any_o man_n to_o defend_v that_o the_o weapon_n and_o armour_n of_o this_o spiritual_a warfare_n undertake_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o by_o all_o godly_a bishop_n and_o true_a priest_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o sufficient_a of_o themselves_o to_o procure_v to_o the_o church_n her_o spiritual_a end_n without_o the_o pope_n carnal_a weapon_n or_o temporal_a authority_n to_o depose_v king_n when_o to_o he_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o cardinal_n it_o shall_v seem_v expedient_a he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n xi_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o necessity_n of_o one_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n than_o of_o one_o visible_a monarch_n over_o all_o the_o world_n in_o the_o 35_o the_o and_o 36_o the_o chapter_n of_o our_o first_o book_n we_o have_v show_v at_o large_a that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v create_v the_o world_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v the_o redeemer_n of_o mankind_n after_o their_o transgression_n through_o adam_n fall_n do_v not_o only_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n govern_v all_o the_o world_n the_o same_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n but_o one_o universal_a kingdom_n and_o appoint_v several_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n as_o his_o substitute_n to_o rule_v the_o same_o under_o he_o in_o their_o several_a country_n and_o kingdom_n leave_v no_o one_o emperor_n or_o temporal_a monarch_n to_o govern_v they_o all_o but_o likewise_o as_o he_o be_v the_o bless_a lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n he_o do_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o our_o endless_a comfort_n erect_v for_o himself_o in_o this_o world_n a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n call_v his_o church_n consist_v of_o such_o man_n disperse_v throughout_o the_o world_n as_o do_v profess_v his_o name_n and_o be_v himself_o the_o only_a head_n and_o governor_n of_o it_o in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v right_o to_o be_v term_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n do_v appoint_v no_o one_o priest_n over_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n but_o several_a priest_n and_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o particular_a church_n in_o every_o province_n country_n and_o nation_n and_o in_o such_o manner_n and_o form_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v rule_v and_o govern_v his_o universal_a kingdom_n and_o catholic_n church_n before_o his_o incarnation_n so_o do_v he_o still_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o same_o notwithstanding_o any_o of_o those_o vain_a pretence_n and_o ridiculous_a usurpation_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o of_o their_o adherent_n be_v able_a to_o allege_v and_o maintain_v to_o the_o contrary_n in_o the_o gloss_n of_o one_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o canon-law_n sanctam_fw-la not_o long_o since_o print_v and_o approve_v by_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o a_o glossographer_n and_o now_o a_o authentical_a canonist_n do_v write_v in_o this_o sort_n dicò_fw-la quod_fw-la potestas_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la debet_fw-la dominari_fw-la omni_fw-la creaturae_fw-la humanae_fw-la i_o say_v that_o the_o spiritual_a power_n ought_v to_o domineer_v over_o every_o humane_a creature_n and_o why_o say_v he_o so_o forsooth_o per_fw-la rationes_fw-la quas_fw-la hostiensis_n inducit_fw-la in_o summa_fw-la for_o certain_a cause_n and_o reason_n which_o hostiensis_n another_o canonist_n do_v allege_v in_o his_o sum_n but_o he_o stay_v not_o there_o he_o have_v another_o motive_n which_o he_o set_v down_o thus_o item_n quia_fw-la christus_fw-la etc._n etc._n also_o because_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o also_o from_o everlasting_a be_v the_o natural_a lord_n and_o by_o the_o natural_a law_n he_o may_v have_v give_v sentence_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o any_o other_o whatsoever_o of_o deposition_n and_o damnation_n and_o any_o other_o sentence_n vtpote_fw-la in_fw-la personas_fw-la quas_fw-la creaverat_fw-la &_o donis_fw-la naturalibus_fw-la &_o gratuitis_fw-la dotaverat_fw-la &_o etiam_fw-la conservabat_fw-la as_o against_o person_n who_o he_o have_v create_v and_o endow_v with_o natural_a and_o free_a gift_n and_o also_o who_o he_o do_v preserve_v &_o eadem_fw-la ratione_fw-la vicarius_fw-la ejus_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o reason_n say_v he_o his_o vicar_n may_v so_o do_v what_o will_v pope_n gregory_n by_o his_o canonist_n make_v man_n to_o believe_v that_o all_o emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n be_v person_n of_o the_o pope_n creation_n or_o that_o he_o do_v bestow_v on_o they_o free_o any_o gift_n or_o benefit_n of_o nature_n or_o that_o their_o preservation_n do_v depend_v upon_o his_o good_a favour_n and_o providence_n but_o the_o idle_a canonist_n his_o wit_n do_v serve_v he_o no_o better_o than_o to_o make_v in_o effect_n this_o fond_a collection_n christ_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n do_v govern_v rule_n dispose_n and_o preserve_v all_o his_o own_o creature_n therefore_o the_o pope_n must_v likewise_o govern_v rule_n dispose_n and_o preserve_v they_o all_o though_o he_o create_v none_o of_o they_o and_o why_o must_v he_o so_o do_v he_o want_v not_o a_o very_a substantial_a reason_n that_o move_v he_o so_o to_o collect_v which_o follow_v in_o his_o own_o word_n nam_fw-la non_fw-la videretur_fw-la dominus_fw-la discretus_fw-la fuisse_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la reverentià_fw-la ejus_fw-la loquar_fw-la nisi_fw-la unicum_fw-la post_fw-la se_fw-la talem_fw-la vicarium_fw-la reliquisset_fw-la qui_fw-la haec_fw-la omne_fw-la posset_n fuit_fw-la autem_fw-la iste_fw-la vicarius_fw-la ejus_fw-la petrus_n et_fw-la idem_fw-la dicendum_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-la successoribus_fw-la petri_n cum_fw-la eadem_fw-la absurditas_fw-la sequeretur_fw-la si_fw-la post_fw-la mortem_fw-la petri_n humanam_fw-la naturam_fw-la à_fw-la se_fw-la creatam_fw-la sine_fw-la regimine_fw-la unius_fw-la personae_fw-la reliquisset_fw-la for_o christ_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v think_v a_o person_n of_o sufficient_a discretion_n that_o with_o his_o reverence_n i_o may_v so_o speak_v except_o he_o have_v leave_v behind_o he_o one_o such_o vicar_n who_o may_v do_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o this_o his_o vicar_n be_v peter_n and_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n see_v the_o same_o absurdity_n must_v follow_v if_o after_o peter_n death_n he_o
to_o a_o house_n to_o a_o ship_n and_o that_o therefore_o she_o must_v have_v but_o one_o captain_n one_o humane_a head_n one_o king_n one_o pastor_n one_o housholder_n and_o one_o pilot_n that_o although_o there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o proper_a head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v christ_n that_o govern_v the_o same_o spiritual_o yet_o she_o have_v need_n of_o one_o visible_a head_n or_o otherwise_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o other_o bishop_n pastor_n doctor_n and_o minister_n be_v needless_a that_o although_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v one_o underneath_o he_o by_o who_o she_o may_v be_v govern_v as_o a_o king_n when_o he_o be_v present_a may_v govern_v his_o kingdom_n himself_o but_o be_v absent_a do_v usual_o appoint_v another_o under_o he_o who_o be_v call_v his_o viceroy_n that_o every_o diocese_n and_o province_n have_v her_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n to_o govern_v the_o particular_a church_n under_o they_o within_o their_o several_a charge_n and_o that_o therefore_o there_o must_v be_v one_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o all_o last_o that_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptism_n so_o there_o must_v be_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o one_o chief_a bishop_n and_o judge_n upon_o who_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o depend_v many_o more_o be_v the_o reason_n ground_v upon_o divers_a other_o similitude_n which_o our_o adversary_n have_v heap_v up_o together_o to_o uphold_v the_o pope_n authority_n all_o of_o they_o be_v as_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a as_o the_o former_a for_o it_o be_v certain_a and_o manifest_a that_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v resemble_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o a_o host_n well_o order_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n to_o a_o kingdom_n to_o a_o flock_n of_o sheep_n to_o a_o house_n and_o to_o a_o ship_n so_o christ_n only_o be_v intend_v thereby_o to_o be_v her_o only_a general_n her_o only_a head_n her_o only_a king_n her_o only_a shepherd_n her_o only_a housholder_n and_o her_o only_a pilot._n neither_o can_v any_o other_o thing_n be_v enforce_v from_o the_o word_n mention_v of_o one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptism_n but_o that_o as_o we_o be_v only_o justify_v through_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o baptism_n ordain_v whereby_o we_o have_v our_o first_o entrance_n into_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o be_v make_v particular_a member_n of_o his_o catholic_n church_n beside_o in_o the_o like_a sense_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o host_n well_o order_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n to_o a_o kingdom_n to_o a_o flock_n to_o a_o house_n to_o a_o ship_n so_o may_v the_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o it_o be_v resemble_v to_o they_o all_o and_o the_o aforesaid_a title_n respective_o attribute_v unto_o he_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v a_o host_n under_o he_o well_o order_v and_o he_o be_v the_o general_n of_o it_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v but_o as_o one_o body_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n be_v the_o life_n of_o all_o man_n from_o who_o as_o from_o their_o head_n they_o have_v their_o sense_n understanding_n and_o motion_n the_o whole_a universal_a world_n be_v but_o his_o kingdom_n and_o he_o be_v the_o king_n of_o it_o rule_v and_o dispose_v it_o as_o seem_v best_a to_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v with_o he_o but_o one_o flock_n and_o he_o be_v the_o shepherd_n of_o it_o all_o man_n in_o it_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o his_o pasture_n to_o who_o he_o give_v food_n and_o sustentation_n in_o due_a season_n also_o he_o order_v all_o the_o affair_n in_o the_o world_n as_o a_o good_a housholder_n do_v order_n and_o direct_v all_o the_o business_n and_o trouble_n appertain_v to_o his_o family_n likewife_n the_o whole_a world_n may_v apt_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o ship_n in_o that_o the_o state_n of_o all_o mankind_n live_v in_o it_o be_v subject_a as_o a_o ship_n on_o the_o sea_n unto_o all_o manner_n of_o contrary_a wind_n tempest_n and_o storm_n of_o which_o ship_n be_v not_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n the_o only_a pilot_n the_o world_n can_v not_o subsist_v and_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o fold_n which_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n so_o may_v the_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v compare_v unto_o a_o fold_n in_o that_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o mankind_n general_o his_o heavenly_a care_n and_o providence_n evermore_o protect_v they_o moreover_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n one_o head_n or_o spiritual_a ruler_n of_o it_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n one_o christian_a faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o gospel_n one_o truth_n one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a form_n or_o nature_n of_o all_o the_o several_a theological_a virtue_n and_o one_o inheritance_n which_o be_v all_o of_o they_o to_o be_v teach_v embrace_v and_o expect_v by_o all_o that_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o universal_a kingdom_n in_o all_o the_o world_n the_o creator_n of_o it_o be_v the_o sole_a emperor_n and_o governor_n of_o it_o one_o moral_a faith_n one_o nature_n of_o truth_n to_o be_v observe_v among_o all_o one_o rule_n and_o nature_n of_o justice_n one_o moral_a law_n one_o nature_n of_o equity_n one_o kind_a form_n or_o nature_n of_o all_o the_o several_a virtue_n both_o moral_a and_o intellectual_a which_o be_v to_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n as_o occasion_n require_v in_o this_o one_o empire_n by_o as_o many_o as_o expect_v from_o christ_n their_o emperor_n any_o happy_a success_n in_o their_o worldly_a affair_n but_o as_o all_o these_o unity_n in_o the_o temporal_a monarchy_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o warrant_v this_o assertion_n that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o temporal_a king_n or_o emperor_n under_o christ_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n so_o the_o aforesaid_a spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n be_v not_o able_a to_o establish_v or_o uphold_v this_o inference_n that_o one_o pope_n must_v of_o necessity_n have_v the_o government_n under_o christ_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n also_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n that_o god_n make_v all_o mankind_n of_o one_o adam_n to_o signify_v that_o he_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o depend_v upon_o one_o why_o may_v it_o not_o as_o well_o be_v collect_v that_o he_o mean_v that_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v depend_v upon_o one_o emperor_n for_o cause_n temporal_a as_o upon_o one_o pope_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a likewise_o it_o be_v a_o very_a absurd_a conceit_n that_o our_o jesuit_n maintain_v when_o he_o say_v that_o although_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v one_o underneath_o he_o by_o who_o she_o may_v be_v govern_v as_o a_o king_n when_o he_o be_v present_a may_v govern_v his_o kingdom_n himself_o and_o when_o he_o be_v absent_a appoint_v his_o viceroy_n of_o likelihood_n this_o fellow_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v sometime_o absent_a from_o his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v his_o grand_a deputy_n for_o otherwise_o by_o his_o own_o example_n christ_n may_v govern_v the_o catholic_n church_n without_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o king_n rule_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n need_v no_o viceroy_n that_o christ_n be_v never_o absent_a from_o his_o church_n but_o do_v by_o his_o power_n grace_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n still_o defend_v and_o protect_v it_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o his_o own_o word_n where_o he_o say_v 20._o lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o tell_v his_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v to_o depart_v from_o they_o meaning_n that_o they_o must_v be_v deprive_v of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n but_o do_v he_o signify_v unto_o they_o that_o for_o their_o comfort_n he_o will_v leave_v st._n peter_n in_o his_o place_n and_o after_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n st._n peter_n successor_n to_o govern_v his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n no_o such_o matter_n these_o be_v our_o saviour_n christ_n word_n 7._o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o you_o that_o i_o go_v away_o for_o if_o i_o go_v not_o away_o the_o comforter_n will_v not_o come_v unto_o you_o but_o if_o i_o depart_v 13._o i_o will_v send_v he_o unto_o you_o again_o when_o he_o be_v come_v which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n he_o will_v lead_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n 17._o again_o i_o will_v pray_v to_o my_o father_n and_o he_o
universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o as_o great_a validity_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o temporal_a king_n under_o he_o to_o govern_v his_o universal_a kingdom_n over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o be_v the_o other_o unity_n touch_v the_o church_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o must_v be_v one_o bishop_n under_o he_o to_o govern_v all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n or_o that_o because_o king_n when_o they_o have_v occasion_n to_o be_v absent_a from_o their_o kingdom_n do_v common_o appoint_v some_o viceroy_n to_o rule_v their_o people_n until_o their_o return_n it_o thereupon_o follow_v that_o christ_n supply_v his_o corporal_a absence_n from_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n the_o church_n by_o the_o comfortable_a presence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o necessity_n to_o leave_v one_o carnal_a man_n to_o be_v his_o vicar-general_n over_o his_o say_a spiritual_a kingdom_n or_o that_o see_v our_o saviour_n christ_n hold_v it_o expedient_a for_o his_o catholic_n church_n that_o he_o shall_v deprive_v she_o of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n that_o she_o may_v be_v rule_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v great_a presumption_n for_o any_o man_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o his_o corporal_a presence_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o say_a catholic_n church_n as_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o put_v the_o holy_a ghost_n out_o of_o possession_n or_o that_o either_o the_o say_v one_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o king_n and_o creator_n of_o it_o be_v otherwise_o visible_a upon_o the_o earth_n than_o by_o the_o particular_a kingdom_n and_o several_a kind_n of_o government_n in_o it_o and_o perhaps_o in_o a_o sort_n and_o by_o representation_n when_o some_o neighbour_n king_n either_o in_o person_n or_o by_o their_o ambassador_n may_v be_v meet_v together_o for_o the_o good_a of_o their_o several_a kingdom_n or_o that_o the_o say_v one_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a bishop_n over_o all_o be_v otherwise_o visible_a on_o the_o earth_n than_o by_o the_o several_a and_o particular_a church_n in_o it_o and_o sometime_o by_o general_n and_o free_a council_n lawful_o assemble_v or_o that_o it_o be_v a_o better_a consequent_a that_o if_o the_o catholic_n church_n have_v no_o visible_a head_n all_o other_o bishop_n doctor_n pastor_n and_o minister_n be_v needless_a than_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v because_o there_o be_v no_o one_o king_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o civil_a magistrate_n or_o that_o it_o do_v more_o follow_v that_o christ_n shall_v have_v leave_v his_o faithful_a people_n in_o a_o confuse_a anarchy_n except_o he_o have_v leave_v st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a church_n than_o it_o do_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v be_v leave_v by_o he_o in_o a_o confusion_n without_o any_o government_n in_o it_o in_o that_o he_o have_v not_o leave_v one_o universal_a emperor_n or_o that_o the_o intolerable_a pride_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o time_n still_o be_v through_o the_o advancement_n of_o himself_o by_o many_o sleight_n stratagem_n and_o false_a miracle_n over_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n himself_o do_v not_o argue_v he_o plain_o to_o be_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o that_o every_o national_a church_n plant_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n platform_n may_v not_o by_o the_o mean_n which_o christ_n have_v ordain_v as_o well_o subsist_v of_o itself_o without_o one_o universal_a bishop_n as_o every_o kingdom_n may_v do_v under_o the_o government_n of_o their_o several_a king_n without_o one_o general_a monarch_n he_o do_v great_o err_v the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o book_n lib_fw-la iii_o cap._n i._n in_o pursue_v our_o intend_a course_n through_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o until_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n we_o overslipt_v and_o pass_v by_o the_o fullness_n of_o that_o time_n wherein_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o maker_n and_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n so_o as_o now_o we_o be_v to_o return_v back_o and_o prosecute_v our_o say_a course_n as_o we_o find_v the_o true_a ground_n thereof_o be_v lay_v down_o confirm_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n at_o our_o entrance_n into_o which_o course_n we_o confess_v ourselves_o to_o be_v indeed_o great_o astonish_v consider_v the_o strange_a impediment_n and_o mighty_a stumble_a block_n which_o through_o long_a practice_n and_o incredible_a ambition_n be_v cast_v in_o our_o way_n in_o that_o we_o find_v the_o estate_n of_o that_o church_n which_o will_v rule_v over_o all_o to_o be_v degenerate_v in_o our_o day_n as_o far_o in_o effect_n from_o her_o primary_n and_o apostolical_a institution_n and_o rule_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n to_o have_v swerve_v through_o the_o like_a pride_n and_o ambition_n from_o that_o excellent_a condition_n wherein_o she_o be_v first_o establish_v and_o afterward_o preserve_v and_o beautify_v by_o moses_n and_o king_n david_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o most_o worthy_a and_o godly_a successor_n 46._o for_o except_o we_o shall_v condemn_v the_o old_a testament_n as_o many_o ancient_a heretic_n have_v do_v and_o thereupon_o overthrow_v all_o which_o hitherto_o we_o have_v build_v and_o not_o that_o only_a but_o shall_v furthermore_o either_o approve_v of_o their_o gross_a impiety_n who_o read_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o if_o they_o be_v falsify_v and_o corrupt_v and_o by_o receive_v and_o reject_v as_o much_o of_o they_o as_o they_o list_v do_v prefer_v before_o they_o as_o not_o contain_v in_o they_o all_o necessary_a truth_n for_o man_n salvation_n certain_a obscure_a and_o apocryphal_a write_n or_o shall_v ourselves_o impious_o imagine_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o now_o we_o have_v it_o be_v but_o a_o rough_a draught_n and_o a_o fit_a project_n compile_v for_o the_o time_n by_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v afterward_o better_o order_v polish_a and_o supply_v with_o certain_a humane_a tradition_n and_o doctrine_n by_o some_o of_o their_o successor_n we_o can_v see_v no_o sufficient_a warrant_n or_o probable_a reason_n why_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v take_v upon_o he_o as_o he_o do_v so_o eminent_a and_o supreme_a authority_n over_o all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o church_n in_o the_o world_n to_o rule_v they_o direct_v they_o bestow_v they_o and_o chap_v and_o change_v they_o under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n as_o he_o from_o time_n to_o time_n shall_v think_v fit_a sure_o we_o be_v if_o the_o scripture_n may_v retain_v their_o ancient_a authority_n and_o continue_v to_o be_v true_a ruler_n and_o principal_a director_n to_o all_o apostolical_a bishop_n that_o in_o they_o there_o will_v not_o be_v find_v any_o shadow_n or_o step_n of_o those_o so_o high_a and_o lofty_a conceit_n to_o the_o proof_n whereof_o before_o we_o address_v ourselves_o we_o have_v think_v it_o very_o expedient_a for_o the_o carriage_n of_o our_o course_n more_o perspicuous_o and_o clear_o to_o make_v it_o apparent_a by_o what_o degree_n and_o practice_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v proceed_v in_o aspire_v to_o that_o sovereignty_n and_o greatness_n which_o now_o they_o have_v attain_v placet_fw-la eye_n john_n overall_n prolocutor_n cap._n ii_o as_o it_o be_v say_v long_o since_o religion_n bring_v forth_o riches_n and_o the_o daughter_n devour_v the_o mother_n so_o may_v it_o very_o true_o be_v say_v in_o these_o day_n the_o empire_n beget_v the_o papacy_n and_o the_o son_n have_v devour_v his_o father_n for_o as_o we_o suppose_v by_o the_o effect_n no_o soon_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n even_o in_o the_o first_o time_n of_o persecution_n get_v any_o rest_n and_o courage_n but_o they_o begin_v to_o think_v with_o themselves_o that_o they_o be_v as_o able_a to_o govern_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o empire_n as_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o be_v to_o govern_v all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o nation_n then_o subject_a unto_o they_o and_o that_o rome_n be_v as_o fit_v a_o seat_n for_o such_o a_o bishop_n as_o it_o be_v for_o so_o great_a a_o emperor_n some_o seed_n of_o this_o ambition_n begin_v to_o sprout_v there_o 23._o when_o victor_n presume_v to_o threaten_v the_o greek_a church_n concern_v the_o feast_n of_o easter_n although_o irenaeus_n then_o live_v do_v great_o dislike_v it_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n little_o regard_v he_o in_o that_o behalf_n say_v they_o nothing_o care_v for_o such_o his_o threat_n pontif._n and_o it_o be_v not_o we_o suppose_v a_o idle_a conceit_n of_o one_o who_o write_v
christ_n but_o likewise_o the_o other_o two_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n god_n the_o father_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o that_o the_o dishonour_n of_o one_o of_o they_o be_v the_o dishonour_n of_o they_o all_o three_o we_o do_v therefore_o for_o ourselves_o and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n acknowledge_v and_o profess_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o heart_n the_o truth_n of_o all_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o consequent_o and_o in_o more_o particular_a manner_n whatsoever_o be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o that_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o bless_a trinity_n out_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o which_o sacred_a write_n because_o the_o apostle_n and_o church_n of_o god_n move_v thereunto_o by_o sundry_a sort_n of_o heretic_n have_v long_v since_o most_o faithful_o and_o learned_o deduce_v into_o certain_a summary_n right_o term_v creed_n all_o those_o point_n of_o true_a doctrine_n which_o do_v concern_v god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v under_o pain_n of_o condemnation_n we_o do_v resolute_o embrace_v and_o steadfast_o believe_v all_o and_o every_o one_o the_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o all_o and_o every_o one_o the_o article_n of_o the_o other_o creed_n make_v by_o sundry_a council_n for_o the_o further_a declaration_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o apostolic_a creed_n as_o of_o the_o nicene_n creed_n make_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a against_o arius_n who_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o next_o creed_n make_v in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n ratify_v and_o further_o declare_v the_o nicene_n creed_n against_o eudoxius_n the_o arian_n and_o macedonius_n who_o deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v god_n and_o of_o the_o creed_n make_v in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n against_o nestorius_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n be_v not_o unite_v together_o personal_o but_o that_o the_o word_n which_o do_v take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o for_o our_o redemption_n do_v only_o assist_v christ_n our_o saviour_n as_o one_o friend_n may_v assist_v another_o and_o of_o the_o creed_n make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n against_o eutyches_n who_o do_v confound_v the_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n against_o any_o of_o which_o article_n whosoever_o do_v oppose_v himself_o and_o do_v wilful_o continue_v in_o such_o his_o opposition_n we_o hold_v and_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v worthy_o subject_a to_o all_o those_o censure_n and_o anathematism_n which_o the_o several_a constitution_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o say_a council_n have_v just_o lay_v upon_o they_o also_o with_o the_o same_o resolution_n and_o faith_n beforementioned_a we_o receive_v and_o believe_v all_o and_o every_o one_o the_o several_a point_n and_o article_n of_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n make_v a_o little_a after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a against_o such_o blasphemous_a opinion_n as_o in_o those_o time_n be_v either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o publish_v in_o corner_n and_o spread_v here_o and_o there_o to_o the_o seduce_a of_o many_o according_a to_o some_o article_n of_o the_o which_o creed_n that_o do_v more_o near_o concern_v our_o course_n we_o steadfast_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n god_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n beget_v before_o all_o world_n and_o man_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o mother_n bear_v in_o the_o world_n perfect_a god_n and_o perfect_a man_n of_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o humane_a flesh_n subsist_v equal_a to_o the_o father_n as_o touch_v his_o godhead_n and_o inferior_a to_o the_o father_n as_o touch_v his_o manhood_n who_o although_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o two_o but_o one_o christ_n one_o not_o by_o conversion_n of_o the_o godhead_n into_o flesh_n but_o by_o take_v of_o the_o manhood_n into_o god_n one_o altogether_o not_o by_o confusion_n of_o substance_n but_o by_o unity_n of_o person_n in_o respect_n of_o which_o personal_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n without_o confusion_n or_o mixture_n of_o either_o of_o they_o thus_o describe_v in_o the_o say_a creed_n whatsoever_o be_v affirm_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o well_o of_o the_o one_o nature_n as_o of_o the_o other_o the_o same_o be_v also_o true_o to_o be_v affirm_v de_fw-la toto_fw-la composito_fw-la that_o be_v of_o his_o most_o sacred_a person_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n the_o essential_a property_n of_o they_o both_o remain_v notwithstanding_o distinguish_v for_o as_o the_o say_v personal_a or_o hypostatical_a union_n of_o the_o say_v two_o nature_n do_v not_o make_v the_o one_o nature_n to_o be_v the_o other_o the_o divine_a nature_n to_o be_v the_o humane_a nature_n or_o the_o humane_a nature_n to_o be_v the_o divine_a nature_n so_o do_v it_o not_o make_v the_o essential_a propriety_n of_o the_o one_o nature_n to_o be_v the_o essential_a propriety_n of_o the_o other_o nature_n but_o as_o well_o the_o propriety_n and_o action_n as_o the_o nature_n themselves_o do_v remain_v distinguish_v though_o unite_v in_o one_o person_n both_o of_o they_o concur_v together_o the_o deity_n in_o work_v that_o which_o appertain_v to_o the_o deity_n and_o the_o humanity_n execute_v those_o essential_a propriety_n and_o action_n which_o do_v belong_v unto_o the_o humanity_n for_o example_n the_o divine_a nature_n appear_v in_o christ_n by_o miracle_n when_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v subject_a to_o many_o opprobry_n and_o injury_n in_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v satisfy_v 5000._o person_n with_o 5._o loaf_n do_v give_v water_n of_o life_n to_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n do_v walk_v upon_o the_o sea_n dry-foot_o do_v by_o his_o commandment_n calm_v the_o wind_n he_o show_v thereby_o some_o effect_n and_o work_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n because_o they_o be_v as_o one_o well_o say_v verbi_fw-la propria_fw-la non_fw-la carnis_fw-la the_o propriety_n of_o the_o word_n and_o not_o of_o the_o flesh_n again_o in_o that_o christ_n break_v bread_n this_o be_v a_o office_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o in_o that_o he_o multiply_v it_o the_o same_o do_v appertain_v to_o his_o divine_a nature_n in_o that_o he_o cry_v out_o lazarus_n come_v forth_o that_o be_v the_o office_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o in_o that_o he_o quicken_v he_o and_o raise_v he_o from_o death_n that_o do_v belong_v unto_o his_o divine_a nature_n in_o that_o he_o say_v thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o that_o be_v a_o office_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o in_o that_o such_o sin_n be_v indeed_o remit_v the_o same_o do_v appertain_v to_o his_o divine_a nature_n in_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n die_v the_o same_o do_v proceed_v from_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o that_o by_o his_o death_n he_o do_v expiate_v our_o sin_n that_o do_v proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n in_o that_o he_o be_v bury_v do_v proceed_v from_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o that_o he_o do_v raise_v himself_o from_o the_o dead_a that_o be_v he_o office_n of_o his_o divinity_n in_o that_o he_o give_v bread_n to_o his_o apostle_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n he_o do_v it_o as_o man_n but_o in_o that_o he_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o his_o bless_a body_n he_o do_v the_o same_o as_o he_o be_v god_n in_o that_o now_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o do_v possess_v that_o kingdom_n in_o the_o name_n and_o behalf_n of_o his_o elect_n that_o do_v appertain_v to_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o that_o he_o do_v now_o remain_v with_o we_o and_o dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o be_v a_o office_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n in_o that_o he_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o that_o do_v belong_v to_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o in_o that_o he_o do_v justify_v we_o regenerate_v we_o work_n in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v in_o that_o he_o rule_v we_o and_o lead_v we_o in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o commandment_n all_o these_o office_n do_v appertain_v unto_o his_o divinity_n last_o in_o that_o he_o shall_v come_v in_o the_o cloud_n and_o say_v unto_o one_o sort_n of_o person_n come_v you_o bless_v and_o unto_o the_o other_o sort_n depart_v you_o curse_v he_o shall_v do_v the_o same_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o in_o that_o he_o shall_v judge_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o knowledge_n of_o all_o man_n heart_n their_o cogitation_n desire_n and_o work_n that_o he_o shall_v do_v as_o god_n nevertheless_o any_o thing_n by_o we_o thus_o affirm_v notwithstanding_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o divide_v though_o the_o propriety_n and_o action_n of_o his_o two_o nature_n be_v in_o this_o
hence_o as_o have_v all_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n here_o in_o the_o world_n as_o vassal_n in_o that_o respect_n and_o subject_n unto_o it_o he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n iu._n the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o work_v our_o salvation_n whilst_o he_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n conform_v himself_o whole_o and_o his_o obedience_n unto_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o law_n of_o the_o church_n then_o in_o force_n inveigh_v not_o with_o any_o bitterness_n against_o the_o high-priest_n though_o they_o be_v his_o enemy_n and_o in_o many_o point_v faulty_a but_o have_v ever_o a_o great_a respect_n of_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o authority_n make_v no_o new_a law_n when_o he_o expound_v the_o old_a erect_v no_o particular_a congregation_n or_o church_n apart_o from_o the_o congregation_n and_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o do_v together_o with_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n join_v with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o their_o public_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n omit_v no_o one_o circumstance_n ceremony_n or_o duty_n undertake_v voluntary_o by_o he_o which_o he_o do_v not_o very_o thorough_o perform_v even_o with_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o life_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o live_v in_o the_o world_n do_v no_o way_n disturb_v the_o civil_a state_n but_o upon_o every_o fit_a occasion_n do_v submit_v himself_o unto_o it_o so_o may_v it_o be_v true_o say_v of_o he_o concern_v the_o state_n ecclesiastical_a former_o by_o god_n himself_o establish_v and_o remain_v still_o among_o the_o jew_n though_o in_o a_o very_a corrupt_a manner_n that_o he_o do_v in_o every_o thing_n thereunto_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n appertain_v conform_v himself_o unto_o it_o while_o it_o last_v i_o say_v while_o it_o last_v because_o upon_o his_o death_n there_o be_v a_o great_a alteration_n according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n than_o whilst_o he_o live_v in_o force_n he_o be_v first_o circumcise_a and_o so_o make_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o whole_a law_n 8._o then_o as_o the_o law_n do_v likewise_o require_v he_o be_v bring_v by_o his_o mother_n to_o jerusalem_n to_o be_v present_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o have_v a_o oblation_n suitable_a to_o their_o poor_a estate_n of_o a_o pair_n of_o turtle-dove_n 13._o or_o two_o pigeon_n offer_v to_o god_n with_o the_o price_n of_o redemption_n for_o he_o 16._o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o manchild_n and_o the_o first-born_a there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o solemn_a feast_n appoint_v by_o the_o law_n which_o he_o honour_v not_o with_o his_o presence_n according_a to_o the_o law_n nay_o he_o be_v please_v to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n 16._o which_o be_v institute_v by_o judas_n maccabaeus_n 23._o and_o his_o brethren_n as_o well_o to_o teach_v all_o posterity_n by_o his_o example_n what_o godly_a magistrate_n may_v ordain_v in_o such_o kind_n of_o cause_n as_o also_o how_o thing_n so_o ordain_v aught_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o as_o he_o be_v circumcise_a so_o do_v he_o celebrate_v and_o observe_v the_o chief_a feast_n of_o the_o passover_n omit_v nothing_o which_o either_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o for_o our_o sake_n he_o have_v undertake_v to_o perform_v and_o although_o the_o priest_n in_o those_o day_n be_v very_o far_o out_o of_o square_a and_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v very_o just_a cause_n in_o that_o respect_n to_o have_v reprove_v they_o sharp_o as_o other_o prophet_n have_v often_o deal_v with_o their_o predecessor_n yet_o he_o do_v so_o much_o regard_v they_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o authority_n unless_o he_o shall_v otherwise_o have_v seem_v to_o have_v contemn_v both_o they_o and_o it_o as_o he_o do_v rather_o choose_v to_o let_v they_o understand_v their_o offence_n by_o parable_n 16._o than_o by_o any_o rough_a reprehension_n 28._o still_o uphold_v they_o in_o their_o credit_n and_o authority_n as_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o that_o behalf_n it_o be_v provide_v when_o among_o many_o other_o his_o wonderful_a great_a miracle_n he_o have_v heal_v certain_a leper_n he_o bid_v they_o go_v show_v themselves_o to_o their_o priest_n 4._o because_o they_o be_v appoint_v judge_n by_o the_o law_n to_o discern_v the_o cure_n of_o that_o disease_n 44._o before_o the_o party_n though_o indeed_o heal_v of_o it_o may_v intermingle_v themselves_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n 14._o and_o do_v further_o require_v they_o to_o offer_v for_o their_o cleanse_v those_o thing_n 14._o which_o moses_n have_v command_v in_o testimonium_fw-la illis_fw-la that_o be_v that_o so_o the_o say_a priest_n may_v plain_o see_v both_o that_o he_o be_v a_o keeper_n of_o the_o law_n and_o also_o that_o he_o have_v heal_v they_o and_o so_o be_v drive_v to_o repent_v they_o of_o their_o incredulity_n or_o at_o the_o least_o prevent_v thereby_o from_o slander_v either_o he_o as_o a_o breaker_n of_o the_o law_n or_o that_o which_o he_o have_v do_v for_o they_o as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o thorough_o heal_v they_o neither_o be_v it_o any_o way_n repugnant_a hereunto_o that_o when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n find_v chap_a and_o change_v 15._o by_o buy_v and_o sell_v in_o the_o temple_n he_o make_v a_o scourge_n of_o small_a cord_n and_o drive_v they_o thence_o with_o the_o sheep_n ox_n dove_n and_o money-bag_n forbid_v they_o to_o make_v his_o father_n house_n a_o house_n of_o merchandise_n for_o he_o do_v not_o thereby_o in_o any_o sort_n prejudice_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o shall_v chief_o have_v prevent_v such_o gross_a abuse_n and_o traffic_v in_o the_o temple_n as_o if_o he_o have_v do_v the_o same_o either_o as_o a_o chief_a priest_n or_o a_o temporal_a king_n according_a to_o some_o man_n fond_a imagination_n by_o any_o pontifical_a or_o regal_a authority_n but_o his_o fact_n therein_o howsoever_o it_o may_v show_v the_o negligence_n of_o the_o say_a priest_n do_v only_o proceed_v from_o his_o divine_a zeal_n as_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o can_v not_o endure_v such_o a_o abominable_a profanation_n of_o god_n house_n many_o prophet_n before_o he_o have_v do_v matter_n very_o lawful_o of_o great_a moment_n through_o the_o like_a divine_a and_o extraordinary_a zeal_n in_o they_o without_o any_o impeachment_n of_o any_o power_n either_o regal_a or_o pontifical_a howbeit_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v oftentimes_o very_o vehement_a against_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n it_o be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a when_o join_v they_o both_o together_o 23._o he_o term_v they_o serpent_n the_o generation_n of_o viper_n and_o denounce_v against_o they_o in_o one_o chapter_n eight_o woe_n conclude_v thus_o how_o shall_v you_o escape_v the_o damnation_n of_o hell_n the_o reason_n that_o these_o curse_n and_o hard_a censure_n be_v joint_o lay_v upon_o they_o be_v because_o they_o themselves_o be_v join_v together_o in_o all_o kind_n of_o impiety_n and_o malice_n against_o christ_n and_o be_v neither_o of_o they_o especial_o the_o pharisees_n any_o plant_n of_o god_n plantation_n for_o whilst_o not_o only_o the_o high-priest_n be_v still_o in_o faction_n and_o fury_n one_o against_o another_o as_o well_o for_o the_o get_n as_o the_o keep_n that_o high_a preferment_n and_o that_o many_o of_o the_o inferior_a priest_n be_v either_o side_v among_o themselves_o for_o one_o party_n or_o other_o or_o else_o more_o idle_a and_o negligent_a in_o discharge_v of_o their_o duty_n than_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v these_o two_o sect_n thrust_v themselves_o into_o the_o church_n and_o through_o their_o hypocrisy_n so_o prevail_v with_o the_o people_n in_o short_a time_n as_o the_o priest_n afterward_o either_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o be_v rid_v of_o they_o because_o on_o the_o one_o side_n they_o think_v it_o in_o vain_a to_o strive_v with_o they_o they_o be_v so_o back_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o find_v they_o so_o diligent_a in_o discharge_v of_o those_o duty_n which_o do_v appertain_v to_o themselves_o and_o withal_o so_o careful_a to_o uphold_v the_o state_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o priesthood_n by_o mean_n whereof_o they_o grow_v very_o short_o into_o so_o great_a estimation_n 2._o that_o as_o one_o write_v of_o the_o pharisee_n whatsoever_o do_v appertain_v to_o public_a and_o solemn_a prayer_n and_o to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n it_o be_v do_v according_a to_o their_o interpretation_n and_o as_o they_o prescribe_v and_o the_o scribe_n be_v likewise_o doctor_n and_o expounder_n of_o the_o law_n and_o concur_v still_o with_o the_o interpretation_n and_o prescription_n of_o the_o pharisee_n come_v not_o by_o that_o policy_n in_o their_o credit_n and_o reputation_n have_v of_o they_o far_o short_a behind_o they_o the_o distinction_n between_o they_o may_v
scorn_v offer_v unto_o he_o the_o wound_n of_o his_o hand_n foot_n and_o side_n the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n the_o seveal_v duty_n appertain_v to_o he_o as_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o likewise_o as_o he_o be_v our_o highpriest_n the_o institution_n of_o baptism_n and_o of_o christ_n last_o supper_n his_o righteousness_n and_o mercy_n his_o death_n with_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n with_o a_o number_n of_o other_o point_n they_o be_v all_o foresee_v figure_v and_o describe_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o be_v according_o with_o admirable_a patience_n humility_n obedience_n courage_n zeal_n and_o alacrity_n execute_v undergo_v and_o accomplish_v by_o he_o in_o such_o manner_n and_o sort_n with_o the_o observation_n of_o all_o necessary_a circumstance_n and_o by_o such_o degree_n as_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v limit_v and_o think_v fit_a for_o so_o great_a a_o work_n for_o all_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v do_v together_o by_o he_o and_o at_o once_o although_o after_o his_o baptism_n he_o preach_v most_o diligent_o wrought_v strange_a wonder_n and_o do_v choose_v to_o assist_v he_o his_o twelve_o apostle_n and_o seventy_o disciple_n who_o do_v likewise_o preach_v baptize_v and_o wrought_v miracle_n in_o his_o name_n yet_o neither_o he_o nor_o they_o do_v collect_v any_o particular_a church_n or_o church_n apart_o from_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o hold_v society_n and_o communion_n with_o they_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o outward_a service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n because_o until_o his_o passion_n as_o well_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n as_o the_o aaronical_a priesthood_n together_o with_o the_o authority_n thereunto_o appertain_v be_v all_o of_o they_o in_o force_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a whilst_o the_o old_a church_n do_v stand_v to_o have_v erect_v a_o new_a moreover_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o as_o before_o christ_n incarnation_n there_o be_v many_o faithful_a and_o godly_a person_n that_o believe_v in_o christ_n to_o come_v and_o by_o that_o their_o faith_n be_v save_v so_o there_o be_v many_o such_o believer_n after_o his_o incarnation_n who_o be_v likewise_o the_o child_n of_o god_n though_o they_o be_v ignorant_a for_o a_o time_n that_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v come_v be_v the_o messiah_n who_o they_o expect_v none_o of_o the_o jew_n so_o believe_v be_v in_o state_n of_o damnation_n until_o after_o they_o have_v see_v christ_n hear_v he_o preach_v be_v present_a at_o his_o miracle_n or_o at_o the_o least_o have_v receive_v full_a instruction_n of_o they_o all_o from_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n they_o do_v notwithstanding_o reject_v he_o in_o which_o respect_n the_o true_a believer_n among_o the_o jew_n in_o those_o day_n may_v not_o well_o have_v be_v distinguish_v into_o several_a and_o different_a congregation_n or_o particular_a church_n without_o many_o great_a and_o apparent_a inconvenience_n but_o this_o point_n be_v yet_o plain_o in_o that_o the_o jew_n who_o believe_v at_o that_o time_n that_o christ_n who_o they_o see_v and_o hear_v be_v the_o true_a messiah_n be_v notwithstanding_o subject_a to_o the_o obedience_n of_o those_o ceremonial_a and_o levitical_a law_n which_o do_v concern_v they_o every_o one_o in_o his_o call_v which_o do_v appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n who_o although_o they_o be_v baptize_v do_v not_o sever_v themselves_o from_o the_o manner_n of_o worship_v of_o god_n in_o those_o time_n insomuch_o as_o first_o they_o do_v celebrate_v together_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o passover_n before_o our_o saviour_n christ_n make_v they_o partaker_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v question_v but_o that_o many_o who_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n their_o and_o our_o saviour_n then_o among_o they_o have_v new_o bear_v child_n before_o his_o passion_n which_o be_v as_o well_o circumcise_v as_o baptize_v for_o then_o as_o circumcision_n be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o baptism_n no_o more_o be_v baptism_n any_o impediment_n to_o circumcision_n be_v both_o of_o they_o so_o unite_v together_o and_o qualify_v as_o they_o can_v not_o well_o be_v sever_v during_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o levitical_a law_n and_o priesthood_n we_o grant_v that_o upon_o our_o saviour_n christ_n birth_n and_o further_a proceed_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o office_n not_o only_o the_o jewish_a ceremony_n but_o in_o like_a sort_n their_o priesthood_n begin_v both_o of_o they_o to_o shake_v and_o do_v after_o a_o sort_n draw_v near_o to_o their_o end_n but_o until_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v upon_o the_o cross_n 30._o it_o be_v finish_v and_o that_o the_o vail_n be_v rend_v in_o twain_o 51._o from_o the_o top_n to_o the_o bottom_n they_o neither_o of_o they_o have_v utter_o lose_v their_o levitical_a nature_n power_n and_o authority_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v hold_v that_o although_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n many_o man_n heart_n be_v draw_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n who_o they_o expect_v and_o that_o they_o be_v thereby_o make_v actual_o partaker_n of_o many_o of_o those_o mercy_n which_o by_o figure_n and_o sacrifice_n have_v be_v former_o set_v out_o unto_o they_o as_o also_o that_o in_o regard_n thereof_o they_o may_v be_v term_v in_o a_o right_n good_a sense_n the_o beginning_n of_o a_o new_a church_n yet_o do_v they_o neither_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o baptism_n make_v any_o separation_n but_o be_v only_o the_o better_a part_n of_o the_o old_a church_n nor_o may_v they_o in_o regard_n of_o either_o of_o they_o have_v lawful_o exempt_v themselves_o from_o the_o government_n of_o it_o which_o be_v further_o manifest_v by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o 15._o when_o he_o say_v thus_o if_o thy_o brother_n trespass_n against_o thou_o go_v and_o tell_v he_o his_o fault_n between_o thou_o and_o he_o alone_o if_o he_o hear_v thou_o thou_o have_v win_v thy_o brother_n but_o if_o he_o hear_v thou_o not_o take_v yet_o with_o thou_o one_o or_o two_o that_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n every_o word_n may_v be_v confirm_v but_o if_o he_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o hear_v they_o tell_v it_o unto_o the_o church_n for_o by_o the_o church_n in_o this_o place_n the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n establish_v among_o the_o jew_n at_o that_o time_n must_v as_o we_o think_v be_v understand_v there_o be_v then_o no_o other_o court_n of_o that_o nature_n among_o they_o which_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o punish_v any_o such_o obstinate_a person_n as_o christ_n there_o speak_v of_o so_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v here_o refer_v the_o party_n offend_v by_o some_o of_o their_o brethren_n to_o the_o say_v ecclesiastical_a court_n in_o the_o same_o respect_n and_o sense_n and_o no_o otherwise_o than_o he_o send_v the_o leper_n who_o he_o have_v heal_v to_o the_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o law_n or_o when_o he_o refer_v the_o multitude_n to_o the_o seribe_n and_o pharisee_n to_o be_v instruct_v by_o they_o because_o they_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n beside_o whatsoever_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o evangelist_n of_o the_o church_n that_o shall_v he_o build_v upon_o a_o rock_n so_o strong_o as_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o prevail_v against_o it_o or_o of_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v by_o censure_n or_o otherwise_o that_o be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o say_a church_n or_o sanhedrim_n mention_v by_o st._n matthew_n or_o to_o any_o particular_a assembly_n of_o christian_n either_o before_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n or_o afterward_o but_o be_v only_o speak_v and_o deliver_v by_o way_n of_o prophecy_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o after_o the_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v be_v establish_v in_o the_o world_n in_o a_o more_o conspicuous_a and_o universal_a sort_n than_o former_o it_o have_v be_v and_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o christ_n in_o the_o say_a word_n tell_v the_o church_n mean_v the_o jew_n court_n or_o sanhedrim_n may_v very_o well_o insinuate_v in_o that_o he_o call_v not_o those_o court_n by_o their_o own_o name_n but_o term_v they_o the_o church_n that_o in_o such_o case_n as_o there_o be_v by_o he_o mention_v the_o christian_n in_o time_n to_o come_v shall_v according_o repair_v unto_o their_o ecclesiastical_a court_n to_o be_v establish_v among_o they_o throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o reformation_n of_o offender_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n as_o the_o jew_n of_o all_o sort_n whether_o believer_n or_o not_o be_v bind_v until_o the_o
death_n of_o christ_n to_o repair_v to_o their_o priest_n and_o sanhedrim_n if_o either_o they_o mean_v to_o be_v true_o instruct_v in_o the_o law_n or_o to_o have_v such_o manner_n of_o offence_n lawful_o punish_v by_o those_o kind_n of_o censure_n that_o christ_n in_o the_o say_a place_n speak_v of_o but_o what_o shall_v we_o insist_v so_o much_o upon_o this_o point_n to_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o jew_n that_o either_o believe_v in_o christ_n or_o do_v reject_v he_o be_v bind_v before_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n establish_v by_o god_n himself_o in_o that_o visible_a church_n consider_v how_o careful_a our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v upon_o every_o occasion_n offer_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o their_o authority_n whilst_o it_o be_v to_o endure_v and_o with_o what_o humility_n he_o do_v submit_v himself_o unto_o it_o for_o be_v send_v for_o by_o they_o he_o be_v content_a at_o that_o time_n to_o go_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o be_v examine_v by_o they_o when_o he_o have_v find_v they_o many_o way_n before_o to_o be_v his_o mortal_a enemy_n and_o know_v how_o at_o that_o present_a they_o be_v plot_v to_o take_v away_o his_o life_n by_o corrupt_v of_o judas_n to_o betray_v he_o into_o their_o hand_n and_o by_o suborn_v of_o false_a witness_n to_o accuse_v he_o as_o also_o how_o after_o they_o have_v examine_v he_o they_o will_v use_v he_o most_o despiteful_o and_o scornful_o spit_v in_o his_o face_n and_o buffet_v he_o beat_v he_o with_o rod_n carry_v he_o bind_v as_o a_o malefactor_n and_o deliver_v he_o to_o pilate_n the_o civil_a magistrate_n likewise_o how_o they_o themselves_o will_v be_v his_o accuser_n how_o they_o will_v practice_v with_o the_o people_n to_o prefer_v barabbas_n liberty_n be_v a_o murderer_n before_o he_o and_o to_o cry_v out_o with_o they_o to_o pilate_n let_v he_o be_v crucify_v let_v he_o be_v crucify_v crucify_v he_o crucify_v he_o their_o outrage_n and_o fury_n be_v so_o bend_v against_o he_o as_o that_o they_o themselves_o will_v have_v put_v he_o to_o death_n if_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o roman_n whereunto_o they_o be_v then_o subject_a they_o may_v have_v be_v permit_v so_o to_o have_v do_v can._n iii_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o obedient_a to_o the_o state_n ecclesiastical_a as_o he_o be_v to_o the_o temporal_a or_o that_o all_o christian_n by_o his_o example_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o be_v as_o well_o obedient_a to_o their_o church-governor_n as_o they_o be_v to_o their_o civil_a magistrate_n or_o that_o christian_a king_n have_v not_o now_o as_o full_a authority_n to_o appoint_v some_o festival_n day_n of_o public_a thanksgiving_n to_o god_n in_o remembrance_n of_o some_o great_a and_o extraordinary_a mercy_n of_o he_o show_v unto_o they_o upon_o those_o day_n as_o judas_n maccabaeus_n have_v to_o ordain_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n to_o be_v yearly_o celebrate_v or_o that_o where_o any_o such_o festival_n day_n be_v appoint_v the_o subject_n of_o every_o such_o king_n ought_v not_o by_o christ_n example_n in_o celebrate_v the_o say_a feast_n to_o observe_v and_o keep_v they_o or_o that_o all_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o teach_v by_o christ_n example_n in_o his_o observe_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v then_o in_o force_n that_o they_o likewise_o be_v bind_v to_o observe_v all_o such_o constitution_n and_o ceremony_n as_o for_o order_n and_o decency_n be_v with_o all_o due_a caution_n establish_v in_o any_o particular_a church_n by_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o it_o until_o it_o shall_v please_v they_o the_o say_v governor_n to_o abrogate_v they_o or_o that_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o bind_v by_o christ_n example_n to_o refrain_v all_o bitterness_n of_o calumniation_n and_o detraction_n and_o to_o deal_v temperate_o and_o mild_o with_o their_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o authority_n that_o it_o be_v not_o bring_v into_o contempt_n though_o they_o find_v some_o imperfection_n either_o in_o their_o person_n or_o in_o their_o proceed_n as_o he_o our_o say_v bless_a saviour_n in_o the_o same_o respect_n deal_v with_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o jew_n though_o they_o have_v many_o way_n transgress_v and_o be_v his_o mortal_a enemy_n or_o that_o christ_n by_o whip_a buyer_n and_o seller_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n do_v either_o impeach_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o priest_n or_o practice_v therein_o any_o pontifical_a or_o temporal_a power_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o temporal_a king_n or_o do_v the_o same_o by_o any_o other_o authority_n than_o as_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n or_o that_o christian_n be_v not_o now_o as_o strong_o bind_v in_o doubt_n of_o religion_n to_o repair_v unto_o the_o chief_a minister_n and_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n although_o they_o be_v not_o always_o tie_v to_o do_v as_o they_o do_v as_o be_v the_o jew_n in_o such_o like_a case_n bind_v to_o repair_v to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o moses_n seat_n or_o that_o every_o true_a christian_a when_o for_o the_o say_a cause_n he_o repair_v to_o the_o chief_a minister_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v resolve_v by_o they_o be_v any_o further_a now_o bind_v to_o depend_v upon_o such_o their_o resolution_n than_o they_o be_v able_a to_o show_v they_o unto_o he_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o than_o the_o jew_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n though_o they_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n when_o they_o teach_v they_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o that_o which_o moses_n have_v command_v or_o that_o christ_n example_n in_o condemn_v the_o false_a interpretation_n and_o gloss_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n and_o in_o restore_v to_o the_o law_n the_o true_a sense_n and_o original_a meaning_n of_o it_o have_v not_o ever_o since_o warrant_v learned_a and_o godly_a man_n when_o they_o find_v the_o scripture_n pervert_v by_o those_o that_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o purpose_n to_o make_v their_o own_o gain_n thereof_o and_o to_o maintain_v their_o great_a usurpation_n to_o free_v the_o same_o by_o search_v the_o say_a scripture_n from_o all_o such_o false_a interpretation_n and_o gloss_n and_o to_o make_v plain_a as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o do_v lie_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o they_o or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n when_o he_o purge_v divers_a part_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o gross_a and_o erroneous_a exposition_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n do_v give_v any_o other_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o they_o or_o infer_v upon_o it_o any_o new_a rule_n of_o great_a perfection_n either_o as_o he_o be_v man_n or_o as_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n than_o they_o have_v and_o contain_v original_o when_o he_o first_o give_v they_o to_o the_o israelite_n as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o erroneous_a and_o fond_a conceit_n like_v unto_o that_o of_o the_o sectary_n among_o the_o jew_n especial_o of_o the_o pharisee_n for_o any_o sort_n of_o person_n no_o way_n able_a to_o perform_v their_o duty_n to_o god_n in_o such_o manner_n and_o sort_n as_o they_o ought_v once_o so_o much_o as_o to_o imagine_v that_o by_o the_o observation_n of_o their_o own_o rule_n they_o be_v able_a to_o attain_v to_o great_a perfection_n than_o by_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n rule_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o as_o vain_a and_o fond_a a_o imagination_n as_o the_o former_a for_o any_o christian_a man_n to_o think_v that_o the_o enjoy_n of_o such_o possession_n and_o riches_n as_o god_n have_v bless_v he_o with_o be_v repugnant_a to_o that_o perfection_n which_o god_n have_v require_v at_o his_o hand_n or_o that_o the_o same_o be_v otherwise_o incompatible_a with_o the_o say_a perfection_n than_o in_o such_o case_n only_o when_o either_o they_o must_v leave_v their_o worldly_a estate_n or_o christ_n their_o saviour_n or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o lay_v of_o some_o ground_n for_o the_o future_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n after_o his_o passion_n do_v thereby_o erect_v any_o new_a church_n apart_o from_o that_o church_n which_o be_v to_o continue_v until_o his_o death_n or_o that_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o hold_v society_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o outward_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n do_v not_o condemn_v all_o such_o sectary_n as_o do_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n whereof_o they_o be_v once_o member_n the_o same_o be_v true_a church_n by_o lawful_a authority_n establish_v under_o pretence_n of_o they_o
yourselves_o unto_o all_o manner_n of_o ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n whether_o it_o be_v unto_o the_o king_n as_o unto_o the_o superior_a or_o unto_o governor_n as_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v send_v of_o he_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o evil_a doer_n and_o for_o the_o praise_n of_o they_o that_o do_v well_o for_o so_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o by_o well_o do_v you_o may_v put_v to_o silence_v the_o ignorance_n of_o foolish_a man_n as_o free_v and_o not_o as_o have_v the_o liberty_n for_o a_o cloak_n of_o maliciousness_n but_o as_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n honour_n all_o man_n love_v brotherly_a fellowship_n fear_v god_n honour_v the_o king_n and_o the_o same_o apostle_n etc._n describe_v the_o nature_n of_o false_a teacher_n which_o in_o time_n to_o come_v will_v thrust_v themselves_o into_o the_o church_n and_o by_o feign_a word_n make_v a_o merchandise_n of_o their_o follower_n among_o other_o impiety_n he_o note_v they_o with_o these_o that_o common_o they_o be_v despiser_n of_o government_n presumptuous_a person_n and_o such_o as_o stand_v in_o their_o own_o conceit_n man_n that_o fear_v not_o to_o speak_v evil_a of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o dignity_n but_o as_o brute_n beast_n lead_v with_o sensuality_n and_o make_v to_o be_v take_v and_o destroy_v speak_v evil_a of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o know_v not_o and_o with_o st._n peter_n in_o this_o point_n the_o apostle_n st._n judas_n do_v concur_v 8._o where_o speak_v of_o those_o who_o in_o future_a time_n shall_v be_v maker_n of_o sect_n he_o term_v they_o mocker_n and_o man_n that_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o speak_v also_o of_o such_o like_a wicked_a person_n as_o be_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n he_o say_v they_o do_v despise_v government_n and_o speak_v evil_a of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n in_o all_o which_o place_n thus_o by_o we_o note_v concern_v as_o well_o the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o sovereign_a king_n and_o prince_n as_o the_o fear_n duty_n and_o obedience_n which_o all_o their_o subject_n be_v true_o and_o sincere_o without_o murmur_v or_o repine_v to_o yield_v and_o perform_v unto_o they_o though_o they_o be_v then_o ethnic_n when_o we_o consider_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o delivery_n of_o that_o evangelical_n doctrine_n and_o their_o ground_n thereof_o as_o also_o how_o vehement_o they_o have_v write_v against_o all_o such_o person_n as_o either_o do_v then_o or_o shall_v afterward_o oppose_v themselves_o unto_o it_o by_o despise_v of_o civil_a magistrate_n speak_v evil_a of_o they_o or_o in_o any_o other_o sort_n whatsoever_o we_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o they_o neither_o command_v teach_v or_o write_v any_o thing_n therein_o but_o what_o they_o know_v to_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o do_v according_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a for_o we_o hold_v it_o resolute_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n do_v either_o write_v teach_v or_o command_v they_o write_v teach_v and_o command_v it_o as_o they_o be_v inspire_v and_o direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 16._o because_o when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v to_o leave_v the_o world_n 21._o he_o promise_v to_o send_v unto_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 13._o the_o comforter_n and_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o shall_v lead_v they_o not_o into_o any_o byway_n or_o shift_a conceit_n but_o into_o the_o direct_a and_o plain_a path_n of_o all_o truth_n and_o do_v very_o short_o after_o perform_v that_o his_o promise_n when_o upon_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n they_o be_v all_o fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 4._o as_o st._n luke_n witness_v beside_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n himself_o do_v profess_v both_o in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n his_o fellow_n that_o their_o master_n be_v the_o truth_n itself_o after_o he_o have_v so_o merciful_o and_o liberal_o perform_v his_o say_a promise_n unto_o they_o they_o do_v not_o deal_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o vintner_n regrater_n or_o merchant_n do_v with_o their_o mix_a wine_n and_o adulterate_a ware_n that_o be_v mingle_v it_o with_o any_o untruth_n or_o superstitious_a conceit_n or_o vent_v it_o out_o otherwise_o than_o the_o truth_n do_v therein_o warrant_v they_o or_o do_v apply_v it_o with_o fraud_n either_o to_o serve_v their_o own_o or_o any_o other_o man_n designment_n or_o deliver_v it_o with_o any_o such_o inward_a reservation_n and_o mental_a evasion_n as_o when_o they_o do_v most_o seem_v to_o their_o hearer_n to_o speak_v one_o thing_n direct_o they_o have_v such_o another_o meaning_n as_o when_o time_n shall_v serve_v they_o may_v make_v use_n of_o but_o whatsoever_o they_o say_v 17._o they_o speak_v it_o sincere_o sicut_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la as_o god_n do_v guide_v they_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n coram_fw-la deo_fw-la as_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n unto_o who_o one_o day_n they_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o say_a sincerity_n &_o in_o christo_n as_o their_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o have_v preach_v teach_v they_o and_o have_v command_v they_o can._n iu._n therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o the_o deity_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v not_o since_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n otherwise_o execute_v the_o majesty_n and_o glory_n thereof_o in_o his_o humanity_n than_o it_o do_v before_o his_o passion_n or_o that_o christ_n now_o in_o glory_n be_v not_o actual_o the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o he_o be_v man_n so_o high_o exalt_v and_o both_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n or_o that_o he_o now_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o glory_n and_o majesty_n as_o he_o be_v man_n have_v make_v a_o alteration_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o temporal_a government_n ordain_v by_o himself_o long_o before_o as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o that_o now_o all_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n be_v but_o one_o kingdom_n in_o respect_n of_o himself_o he_o do_v not_o allow_v the_o distribute_v of_o that_o his_o one_o universal_a kingdom_n into_o divers_a principality_n and_o kingdom_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o so_o many_o king_n and_o absolute_a prince_n under_o he_o or_o that_o such_o king_n and_o sovereign_a governor_n as_o be_v ethnic_n be_v deprive_v by_o christ_n ascension_n into_o heaven_n and_o most_o glorious_a estate_n there_o from_o the_o true_a interest_n and_o lawful_a possession_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o before_o they_o enjoy_v or_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v deceive_v in_o hold_v and_o maintain_v that_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v such_o king_n and_o prince_n as_o be_v then_o pagan_n or_o that_o the_o subject_n of_o all_o the_o temporal_a prince_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o as_o much_o bind_v in_o st._n paul_n time_n to_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o as_o the_o roman_n be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o empire_n not_o only_o for_o fear_n but_o even_o for_o conscience_n sake_n or_o that_o st._n paul_n commandment_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o apostleship_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o obedience_n to_o prince_n than_o ethnic_n be_v not_o of_o as_o great_a force_n to_o bind_v the_o conscience_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v then_o summus_n pontifex_n or_o that_o any_o pope_n now_o have_v power_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o say_a doctrine_n of_o st._n paul_n as_o the_o say_a canonist_n by_o we_o quote_v do_v seem_v to_o affirm_v where_o after_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n command_v all_o man_n to_o be_v obedient_a to_o superior_a power_n be_v not_o the_o high_a bishop_n he_o add_v these_o word_n papa_n major_a est_fw-la administratione_fw-la paulo_n &_o papa_n dispensat_fw-la contra_fw-la apostolum_n in_o his_o quae_fw-la non_fw-la concernunt_fw-la articulos_fw-la fidei_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v great_a in_o authority_n than_o paul_n the_o pope_n do_v dispense_v against_o the_o apostle_n in_o those_o thing_n that_o do_v not_o concern_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o as_o well_o restrain_v de_fw-la jure_fw-la by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n apostle_n as_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la from_o bear_v arm_n against_o such_o prince_n as_o be_v then_o ethnic_n and_o transfer_v of_o their_o kingdom_n from_o they_o unto_o any_o other_o or_o that_o st._n peter_n himself_o who_o our_o adversary_n will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v be_v then_o the_o high_a bishop_n concur_v with_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n when_o he_o command_v the_o christian_n in_o those_o day_n to_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o the_o king_n as_o unto_o the_o superior_a they_o both_o of_o they_o be_v assure_v command_v therein_o as_o they_o
be_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v leave_v this_o doctrine_n so_o joint_o teach_v to_o be_v dispense_v with_o afterward_o by_o any_o pope_n his_o vicar_n lead_v by_o what_o spirit_n be_v easy_a to_o be_v discern_v be_v so_o far_o different_a from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o speak_v as_o be_v aforesaid_a by_o the_o say_a apostle_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o most_o wicked_a and_o detestable_a assertion_n for_o any_o man_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o command_v such_o obedience_n to_o the_o ethnic_a prince_n then_o do_v not_o true_o mean_v as_o their_o plain_a word_n do_v import_v but_o have_v some_o mental_a reservation_n whereby_o the_o same_o may_v be_v alter_v as_o occasion_n shall_v serve_v or_o that_o the_o apostle_n at_o that_o time_n if_o they_o have_v find_v the_o christian_n of_o sufficient_a force_n for_o number_n provision_n and_o furniture_n of_o warlike_a engine_n to_o have_v depose_v those_o pagan_a prince_n that_o be_v then_o both_o enemy_n and_o persecutor_n of_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n will_v no_o doubt_n have_v move_v and_o authorize_v they_o to_o have_v make_v war_n against_o such_o their_o prince_n and_o absolve_v they_o from_o perform_v any_o long_a that_o obedience_n which_o they_o as_o man_n temporize_v have_v in_o their_o write_n prescribe_v unto_o they_o or_o that_o when_o afterward_o christian_n be_v grow_v able_a for_o number_n and_o strength_n to_o have_v oppose_v themselves_o by_o force_n against_o their_o emperor_n be_v wicked_a and_o persecutor_n they_o may_v lawful_o so_o have_v do_v for_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o the_o contrary_a or_o that_o these_o and_o such_o like_a exposition_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n when_o they_o write_v so_o plain_o and_o direct_o be_v not_o very_o impious_a and_o blasphemous_a as_o tend_v not_o only_a to_o the_o utter_a discredit_n of_o they_o and_o their_o write_n but_o likewise_o to_o the_o indelible_a stain_n and_o dishonour_n of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n in_o that_o they_o be_v write_v by_o no_o other_o person_n of_o any_o great_a authority_n than_o be_v the_o apostle_n nor_o by_o the_o inspiration_n and_o direction_n of_o any_o other_o spirit_n he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n vi_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n do_v not_o in_o effect_n alter_v the_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n among_o the_o jew_n the_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o priesthood_n under_o the_o law_n otherwise_o than_o as_o the_o say_a priesthood_n be_v typical_a and_o have_v the_o execution_n of_o levitical_a ceremony_n annex_v unto_o it_o be_v institute_v and_o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o continue_v not_o for_o a_o time_n but_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n we_o have_v deduce_v in_o our_o former_a book_n the_o joint_a descent_n of_o the_o state_n as_o well_o ecclesiastical_a as_o temporal_a from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n since_o who_o birth_n see_v we_o have_v find_v no_o alteration_n in_o the_o temporal_a government_n of_o the_o world_n either_o while_n christ_n live_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n or_o during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o apostle_n assure_o we_o shall_v not_o find_v that_o the_o alteration_n which_o upon_o christ_n death_n fall_v out_o in_o the_o church_n be_v so_o great_a as_o some_o have_v imagine_v for_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n according_a unto_o his_o divine_a nature_n have_v create_v all_o the_o world_n be_v the_o sole_a monarch_n of_o it_o and_o do_v govern_v the_o same_o visible_o by_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n his_o vicegerent_n upon_o earth_n so_o he_o in_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o foresee_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n and_o how_o thereby_o all_o his_o posterity_n shall_v become_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n do_v of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n undertake_v to_o be_v their_o redeemer_n and_o present_o after_o the_o transgression_n of_o adam_n &_o eve_n put_v that_o his_o office_n in_o practice_n whereby_o as_o he_o be_v agnus_n occisus_fw-la ab_fw-la origine_fw-la mundi_fw-la he_o not_o only_o begin_v the_o erection_n of_o that_o one_o church_n select_a people_n and_o society_n of_o believer_n which_o eversince_o have_v be_v and_o so_o shall_v continue_v his_o bless_a spouse_n for_o ever_o but_o also_o take_v upon_o he_o thenceforward_o and_o for_o ever_o to_o be_v the_o sole_a head_n and_o monarch_n of_o it_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o same_o visible_o by_o such_o priest_n and_o minister_n under_o he_o as_o in_o his_o heavenly_a wisdom_n he_o think_v fit_a to_o appoint_v and_o as_o we_o have_v more_o at_o large_a express_v in_o our_o say_a former_a book_n especial_o when_o he_o settle_v among_o the_o jew_n a_o more_o exact_a and_o eminent_a form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n than_o before_o that_o time_n he_o have_v do_v in_o the_o which_o his_o so_o exact_a a_o form_n he_o first_o do_v separate_v the_o civil_a government_n from_o the_o ecclesiastical_a as_o they_o be_v both_o joint_o exercise_v by_o one_o person_n restrain_v the_o priesthood_n for_o a_o time_n unto_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n and_o the_o civil_a government_n unto_o temporal_a prince_n and_o short_o after_o more_o particular_o unto_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n concern_v the_o priesthood_n thus_o limit_v we_o need_v to_o say_v little_a because_o the_o order_n and_o subordination_n of_o it_o be_v so_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n aaron_n and_o his_o son_n after_o he_o by_o succession_n have_v the_o first_o place_n and_o be_v appoint_v to_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o highpriest_n and_o under_o their_o sovereign_a prince_n and_o temporal_a governor_n as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o our_o say_a first_o book_n cap._n 18._o do_v bear_v the_o chief_a sway_n in_o matter_n appertain_v to_o god_n next_o unto_o aaron_n there_o be_v 24._o priest_n of_o a_o inferior_a degree_n that_o be_v term_v principes_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la that_o govern_v the_o three_o sort_n of_o priest_n allot_v unto_o their_o several_a charge_n and_o this_o three_o sort_n also_o have_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o levite_n at_o their_o direction_n in_o like_a manner_n these_o levite_n neither_o want_v their_o chief_a ruler_n to_o order_v they_o according_a as_o the_o say_v three_o sort_n of_o priest_n do_v command_v which_o ruler_n be_v term_v principes_fw-la levitarum_fw-la in_o number_n 24._o nor_o their_o assistant_n the_o gabionite_n otherwise_o call_v nethinaei_n to_o help_v they_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o base_a office_n of_o this_o notable_a form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v in_o our_o judgement_n that_o the_o same_o be_v of_o god_n own_o frame_v it_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v the_o best_a and_o most_o perfect_a form_n of_o church-government_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o can_v be_v devise_v and_o that_o form_v also_o be_v best_a to_o be_v approve_v and_o uphold_v which_o do_v most_o resemble_v it_o and_o come_v near_a unto_o it_o we_o say_v upon_o a_o fit_a occasion_n 4._o that_o by_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o church-government_n then_o among_o the_o jew_n be_v great_o alter_v and_o therefore_o do_v think_v it_o very_o convenient_a in_o this_o place_n more_o full_o therein_o to_o set_v down_o our_o meaning_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o before_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o outward_a service_n of_o god_n do_v much_o consist_v in_o figure_n shadow_n and_o sacrifice_n the_o levitical_a priesthood_n itself_o as_o it_o be_v to_o aaron_n and_o his_o stock_n and_o in_o some_o other_o respect_n be_v only_o a_o type_n of_o our_o high_a priest_n jesus_n christ_n but_o afterward_o when_o by_o his_o passion_n upon_o the_o cross_n he_o have_v fulfil_v all_o that_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o say_a figure_n shadow_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o have_v likewise_o not_o only_o abolish_v they_o but_o free_v the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o priesthood_n and_o remove_v the_o high_a priesthood_n as_o it_o be_v typical_a from_o the_o say_v priestly_a tribe_n unto_o the_o regal_a tribe_n of_o judah_n the_o same_o be_v now_o settle_v in_o himself_o our_o only_a high_a priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n not_o of_o aaron_n but_o of_o melchizedech_n he_o have_v by_o that_o his_o translation_n of_o the_o priesthood_n 12._o free_v his_o church_n from_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n 10._o which_o contain_v in_o it_o little_a but_o pattern_n shadow_n and_o figure_n of_o that_o one_o sacrifice_n offer_v by_o he_o upon_o the_o cross_n 14._o which_o do_v sanctify_v all_o the_o faithful_a and_o purge_v their_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n nevertheless_o in_o this_o so_o great_a a_o alteration_n although_o all_o the_o say_a figure_n
we_o and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o himself_o once_o offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n vanquish_v both_o the_o devil_n death_n and_o hell_n to_o the_o end_n that_o as_o many_o as_o believe_v in_o he_o may_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o therefore_o know_v faith_n to_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o so_o unspeakable_a a_o benefit_n he_o vouchsafe_v not_o only_o to_o be_v our_o priest_n but_o our_o heavenly_a prophet_n labour_v by_o preach_v and_o miracle_n to_o beget_v faith_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o hearer_n that_o satan_n be_v expel_v thence_o he_o himself_o with_o his_o father_n may_v abide_v and_o make_v their_o mansion_n in_o they_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o which_o most_o admirable_a work_n how_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v equal_a with_o his_o father_n become_v a_o servant_n for_o our_o sake_n as_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n whereunto_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n he_o conform_v himself_o and_o what_o a_o poor_a estate_n he_o hold_v whilst_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n how_o he_o be_v bear_v in_o poverty_n live_v in_o poverty_n and_o die_v in_o poverty_n how_o malicious_o and_o scornful_o he_o be_v oftentimes_o entreat_v how_o as_o when_o he_o speak_v the_o truth_n his_o enemy_n say_v he_o blaspheme_v so_o when_o he_o cast_v out_o devil_n 24._o they_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o cast_v they_o out_o by_o beelzebub_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o devil_n how_o in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o life_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o temporal_a king_n or_o have_v possession_n of_o any_o regal_a state_n as_o he_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o house_n of_o his_o own_o to_o rest_v his_o head_n in_o but_o be_v glad_a to_o lodge_v now_o with_o one_o man_n and_o then_o with_o another_o as_o the_o occasion_n and_o time_n serve_v and_o how_o in_o the_o end_n he_o be_v content_a to_o satisfy_v the_o malice_n of_o his_o enemy_n by_o submit_v himself_o for_o our_o sake_n unto_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n it_o be_v a_o needless_a labour_n for_o we_o to_o pursue_v the_o evangelist_n have_v so_o plain_o set_v down_o all_o these_o particular_n and_o many_o more_o beside_o to_o that_o purpose_n likewise_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o spare_o to_o recount_v how_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v not_o only_o content_a to_o preach_v and_o work_v miracle_n himself_o for_o the_o conversion_n o●_n those_o that_o hear_v he_o but_o do_v to_o the_o same_o end_n as_o well_o before_o his_o passion_n as_o after_o authorize_v likewise_o his_o twelve_o apostle_n and_o seventy_o disciple_n to_o preach_v and_o work_v strange_a miracle_n and_o furthermore_o ordain_v a_o succession_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o this_o his_o kingdom_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n himself_o never_o forsake_v his_o church_n and_o minister_n but_o still_o assist_v they_o in_o that_o their_o spiritual_a charge_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v unto_o they_o for_o although_o that_o he_o himself_o by_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n have_v vanquish_v satan_n and_o rule_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a yet_o by_o reason_n of_o our_o infirmity_n and_o weakness_n of_o faith_n and_o through_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o never_o cease_v like_o a_o roar_a lion_n to_o seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v this_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v but_o now_o begin_v in_o we_o and_o uphold_v in_o we_o by_o the_o most_o merciful_a hand_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n through_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o ministry_n but_o in_o the_o end_n through_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n passion_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o which_o be_v write_v etc._n death_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o victory_n o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o hell_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n but_o thanks_o be_v unto_o god_n who_o have_v give_v we_o victory_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 14._o and_o again_o death_n hell_n and_o the_o devil_n shall_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n and_o during_o the_o time_n of_o this_o our_o pilgrimage_n 27._o we_o be_v for_o the_o continuance_n of_o christ_n dwelling_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o follow_v the_o counsel_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o in_o no_o sort_n we_o give_v any_o place_n to_o the_o devil_n 7._o but_o that_o we_o resist_v he_o with_o all_o the_o force_n we_o be_v able_a for_o in_o so_o do_v he_o will_v fly_v from_o we_o and_o for_o our_o better_a resistance_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v against_o the_o assault_n of_o satan_n we_o have_v a_o notable_a and_o complete_a armour_n appoint_v we_o by_o the_o say_v holy_a spirit_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o enemy_n we_o have_v to_o fight_v with_o for_o say_v the_o holy_a apostle_n we_o wrestle_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o against_o principality_n against_o power_n and_o against_o worldly_a governor_n 12._o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n of_o this_o world_n against_o spiritual_a wickedness_n which_o be_v in_o the_o high_a place_n and_o thus_o we_o have_v a_o brief_a and_o short_a idea_n of_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n whereof_o when_o the_o apostle_n after_o they_o be_v replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n have_v full_a understanding_n and_o notice_n they_o never_o dream_v for_o aught_o that_o appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a in_o the_o scripture_n of_o any_o worldly_a pre-eminence_n or_o principality_n who_o shall_v sit_v here_o and_o who_o shall_v sit_v there_o but_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o same_o estate_n and_o condition_n of_o life_n that_o their_o master_n have_v lead_v before_o they_o remember_v how_o he_o have_v describe_v the_o same_o unto_o they_o when_o he_o first_o send_v they_o to_o preach_v among_o the_o jew_n etc._n behold_v say_v he_o unto_o they_o i_o send_v you_o as_o sheep_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o wolf_n beware_v of_o man_n for_o they_o will_v deliver_v you_o up_o to_o the_o council_n and_o will_v scourge_v you_o in_o the_o synagogue_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o governor_n and_o king_n for_o my_o sake_n in_o witness_n to_o they_o and_o the_o gentile_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v hate_v of_o all_o man_n for_o my_o sake_n when_o they_o persecute_v you_o in_o this_o city_n flee_v into_o another_o the_o disciple_n be_v not_o above_o his_o master_n nor_o the_o servant_n above_o his_o lord_n if_o they_o have_v call_v the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n beelzebub_n how_o much_o more_o they_o of_o his_o household_n whosoever_o will_v be_v a_o perfect_a disciple_n 20._o shall_v be_v as_o his_o master_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v weep_v and_o lament_v and_o the_o world_n shall_v rejoice_v 2._o the_o time_n shall_v come_v that_o whosoever_o kill_v you_o will_v think_v that_o he_o do_v god_n service_n and_o as_o christ_n do_v thus_o foretell_v they_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v for_o no_o soon_o do_v they_o begin_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n after_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o be_v whip_v scourge_v cast_v into_o prison_n bind_v with_o chain_n and_o most_o cruel_o entreat_v st._n paul_n do_v testify_v somewhat_o hereof_o when_o write_v in_o the_o name_n both_o of_o himself_o and_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o minister_n he_o say_v thus_o in_o all_o thing_n we_o approve_v ourselves_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n 4._o in_o much_o patience_n in_o affliction_n in_o necessity_n in_o distress_n in_o stripe_n in_o prison_n in_o tumult_n in_o labour_n by_o watch_n by_o fasting_n by_o long_a suffering_n by_o dishonour_n by_o evil_a report_n as_o deceiver_n and_o yet_o true_a as_o unknown_a and_o yet_o know_v as_o die_v and_o behold_v we_o live_v beside_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v of_o his_o own_o particular_a condition_n do_v argue_v the_o estate_n and_o condition_n of_o his_o fellow_n though_o one_o will_v have_v think_v that_o little_o more_o can_v have_v be_v add_v to_o the_o barbarous_a cruelty_n last_o mention_v to_o have_v be_v execute_v upon_o they_o for_o compare_v himself_o and_o his_o pain_n with_o certain_a false_a brethren_n that_o be_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n among_o the_o apostle_n and_o seek_v for_o their_o own_o commendation_n to_o impair_v the_o credit_n of_o this_o our_o apostle_n etc._n he_o write_v in_o this_o manner_n they_o be_v minister_n of_o christ_n i_o be_o more_o in_o labour_n more_o abundant_a in_o stripe_n above_o measure_n in_o prison_n more_o plenteous_o of_o the_o jew_n five_o time_n receive_v i_o forty_o stripe_n save_v one_o i_o be_v thrice_o beat_v
with_o rods._n i_o be_v once_o stone_v i_o suffer_v thrice_o shipwreck_n night_n and_o day_n have_v i_o be_v in_o the_o deep_a sea_n in_o journey_v i_o be_v often_o in_o peril_n of_o water_n in_o peril_n of_o robber_n in_o peril_n of_o my_o own_o nation_n in_o peril_n among_o the_o gentile_n in_o peril_n in_o the_o wilderness_n in_o peril_n in_o the_o sea_n in_o peril_n among_o false_a brethren_n in_o weariness_n and_o painfulness_n in_o watch_v often_o in_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n in_o fasting_n often_o in_o cold_a and_o nakedness_n beside_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v outward_a i_o be_o cumber_v daily_o and_o have_v the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n much_o be_v not_o write_v of_o st._n peter_n by_o the_o evangelist_n st._n luke_n but_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v that_o his_o case_n be_v as_o bad_a as_o any_o of_o his_o fellow_n when_o he_o begin_v to_o preach_v 21._o he_o be_v call_v in_o question_n with_o great_a eagerness_n 40._o and_o vehement_o threaten_v also_o with_o some_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n he_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n and_o beat_v likewise_o when_o james_n be_v kill_v by_o herod_n commandment_n peter_n be_v again_o imprison_v and_o load_v with_o iron_n and_o have_v assure_o in_o all_o likelihood_n escape_v hardly_o with_o his_o life_n but_o that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n deliver_v he_o 12._o in_o a_o word_n after_o many_o affliction_n injury_n calamity_n and_o misery_n endure_v by_o the_o apostle_n whilst_o they_o live_v in_o this_o world_n they_o be_v in_o the_o end_n as_o well_o st._n peter_n as_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n most_o spiteful_o and_o cruel_o by_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o their_o own_o salvation_n put_v to_o death_n during_o the_o course_n of_o who_o life_n in_o so_o great_a danger_n and_o manifold_a distress_n out_o of_o question_n they_o will_v great_o have_v marvel_v their_o hard_a estate_n consider_v but_o especial_o st._n peter_n if_o he_o have_v know_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o sole_a monarch_n under_o christ_n over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o emperor_n and_o all_o other_o king_n have_v be_v at_o that_o time_n his_o vassal_n and_o that_o likewise_o they_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v under_o st._n peter_n so_o many_o sovereign_a and_o temporal_a prince_n to_o have_v command_v and_o rule_v among_o they_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n neither_o do_v we_o see_v any_o true_a cause_n that_o may_v have_v move_v st._n peter_n to_o have_v conceal_v that_o his_o so_o eminent_a temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n if_o he_o have_v think_v it_o to_o have_v be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n or_o at_o least_o if_o he_o for_o modesty_n will_v have_v be_v silent_a why_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n shall_v not_o have_v publish_v it_o that_o the_o civil_a and_o temporal_a state_n in_o those_o time_n who_o know_v no_o such_o ordination_n make_v by_o christ_n may_v have_v be_v leave_v inexcusable_a beside_o the_o conceal_n of_o a_o truth_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n be_v a_o injury_n offer_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a in_o those_o day_n who_o have_v they_o be_v true_o teach_v in_o these_o man_n conceit_n aught_o to_o have_v leave_v their_o obedience_n to_o the_o emperor_n in_o all_o temporal_a cause_n and_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o have_v adhere_v unto_o st._n peter_n to_o have_v be_v direct_v in_o they_o by_o he_o their_o temporal_a monarch_n the_o consideration_n of_o all_o which_o inconvenience_n and_o consequent_n do_v persuade_v we_o to_o think_v that_o none_o of_o the_o apostle_n ever_o dream_v of_o any_o such_o temporal_a sovereignty_n notwithstanding_o that_o they_o know_v well_o the_o scripture_n how_o christ_n tell_v they_o that_o all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o how_o st._n peter_n have_v two_o sword_n and_o how_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n for_o lie_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v strike_v sudden_o from_o heaven_n with_o death_n touch_v the_o two_o first_o of_o which_o place_n the_o same_o be_v notorious_o abuse_v and_o wrest_v by_o the_o canonist_n and_o their_o adherent_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n temporal_a monarchy_n occurrunt_fw-la the_o say_a cardinal_n do_v very_o resolute_o reject_v the_o argument_n which_o be_v thence_o by_o they_o deduce_v and_o to_o the_o first_o he_o answer_v potestatem_fw-la de_fw-la quâ_fw-la hic_fw-la loquor_fw-la dominus_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la potestatem_fw-la temporalem_fw-la ut_fw-la regnum_fw-la terrenorum_fw-la sed_fw-la vel_fw-la tantùm_fw-la spiritualem_fw-la ut_fw-la b._n hieronymus_n &_o b._n anselmus_fw-la exponunt_fw-la qui_fw-la hunc_fw-la esse_fw-la volunt_fw-la sensum_fw-la eorum_fw-la verborum_fw-la data_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la omnis_fw-la potestas_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la &_o in_o terrâ_fw-la i.e._n ut_fw-la sicut_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la rex_fw-la sum_fw-la angelorum_fw-la ità_fw-la per_fw-la fidem_fw-la regnem_fw-la in_o cordibus_fw-la hominum_fw-la vel_fw-la ut_fw-la addit_fw-la theophylactus_n esse_fw-la potestatem_fw-la quandam_fw-la summam_fw-la in_o omnes_fw-la creaturas_fw-la non_fw-la temporalem_fw-la sed_fw-la divinam_fw-la vel_fw-la divinae_fw-la simillimam_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la communicari_fw-la homini_fw-la mortali_fw-la that_o the_o power_n whereof_o the_o lord_n here_o speak_v be_v not_o a_o temporal_a power_n like_o the_o power_n of_o terrene_a king_n but_o it_o be_v either_o a_o spiritual_a power_n as_o st._n hierom_n and_o st._n anselm_n do_v expound_v the_o say_a place_n who_o will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n all_o power_n be_v give_v i_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o as_o in_o heaven_n i_o be_o king_n of_o angel_n so_o by_o faith_n i_o do_v reign_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n or_o as_o theophylact_fw-mi add_v it_o be_v a_o certain_a supreme_a power_n not_o temporal_a but_o divine_a or_o most_o like_a to_o the_o divine_a power_n which_o can_v be_v communicate_v to_o any_o mortal_a man._n and_o for_o the_o second_o argument_n draw_v from_o st._n peter_n be_v two_o sword_n the_o same_o be_v set_v down_o by_o our_o say_a cardinal_n in_o these_o word_n objiciunt_fw-la secundò_fw-la objiciunt_fw-la scripturam_fw-la luc._n 22._o vbi_fw-la dominus_fw-la duos_fw-la gladios_fw-la petro_n concedit_fw-la cum_fw-la enim_fw-la discipuli_fw-la dicerent_fw-la ecce_fw-la duo_fw-la gladii_fw-la hic_fw-la dominus_fw-la non_fw-la ait_fw-la nimis_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la satis_fw-la est_fw-la quare_fw-la b._n bernardus_n 4._o 4._o de_fw-la consid_n &_o bonifacius_n octavus_fw-la in_o extravag_n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la de_fw-la majoritate_fw-la &_o obedientiâ_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la deducunt_fw-la pontisicem_fw-la duos_fw-la gladios_fw-la ex_fw-la christi_fw-la institutione_n habere_fw-la that_o be_v second_o they_o object_v the_o scripture_n luc._n 22._o where_o the_o lord_n do_v grant_v two_o sword_n to_o peter_n for_o when_o the_o disciple_n say_v behold_v here_o be_v two_o sword_n the_o lord_n answer_v not_o they_o be_v too_o many_o but_o they_o be_v sufficient_a therefore_o st._n bernard_n and_o boniface_n the_o eight_o do_v hence_o deduce_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o christ_n institution_n have_v two_o sword_n unto_o which_o objection_n our_o cardinal_n say_v thus_o respondeo_fw-la ad_fw-la literam_fw-la nullam_fw-la fieri_fw-la mentionem_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la loco_fw-la evangelii_n de_fw-la gladio_fw-la spirituali_fw-la vel_fw-la temporali_fw-la pontificis_fw-la sed_fw-la solum_fw-la dominum_fw-la illis_fw-la verbis_fw-la monere_fw-la voluisse_fw-la discipulos_fw-la tempore_fw-la passionis_fw-la suae_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la angustiis_fw-la &_o metu_fw-la ipsos_fw-la futuros_fw-la fuisse_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la esse_fw-la solent_fw-la qui_fw-la tunicam_fw-la vendunt_fw-la ut_fw-la emant_fw-la gladium_fw-la ut_fw-la ex_fw-la theophylacto_fw-la aliisque_fw-la patribus_fw-la colligitur_fw-la i_o answer_v that_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o that_o place_n of_o the_o gospel_n either_o of_o the_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a sword_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o christ_n mean_v only_o in_o those_o word_n to_o admonish_v his_o disciple_n how_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o passion_n in_o those_o straits_n and_o fear_v wherein_o man_n be_v accustom_v to_o be_v who_o sell_v their_o coat_n to_o buy_v they_o a_o sword_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v collect_v out_o of_o theophylact_fw-mi and_o other_o father_n and_o for_o bernard_n and_o boniface_n he_o say_v they_o do_v expound_v the_o say_a place_n mystical_o and_o mean_v not_o to_o have_v their_o word_n so_o far_o extend_v as_o the_o objector_n will_v have_v they_o which_o answer_n it_o be_v likely_a bernard_n if_o he_o be_v now_o alive_a will_v take_v in_o good_a part_n but_o assure_o if_o any_o cardinal_n in_o bonifacius_n be_v day_n have_v make_v it_o he_o will_v have_v smart_v for_o it_o and_o may_v perhaps_o have_v try_v the_o depth_n of_o tiber._n neither_o do_v we_o suppose_v that_o the_o now_o pope_n will_v give_v he_o any_o great_a thanks_o for_o it_o nor_o
that_o in_o all_o likelihood_n he_o have_v receive_v any_o great_a commendation_n for_o his_o plain_a deal_n in_o answer_n to_o another_o objection_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n who_o in_o a_o epistle_n of_o he_o to_o michael_n the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n do_v write_v thus_o christus_fw-la b._n petro_n aquavitae_fw-la aeternae_fw-la clavigero_fw-la terreni_fw-la simul_fw-la &_o coelestibus_fw-la imperii_fw-la jura_n commisti_fw-la christ_n do_v commit_v to_o st._n peter_n the_o key_n bearer_n of_o everlasting_a lise_n the_o right_a and_o interest_n both_o of_o the_o earthly_a and_o of_o the_o heavenly_a empire_n to_o which_o say_v of_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o cardinal_n make_v two_o answer_n testimonium_fw-la ad_fw-la testimonium_fw-la nicolai_n dico_fw-la imprimis_fw-la illud_fw-la citari_fw-la à_fw-la gratiano_n d._n 22._o can._n omnes_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la inveniri_fw-la inter_fw-la epistolas_fw-la nicolai_n papae_fw-la to_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o say_v be_v cite_v by_o gratian_n but_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o testimony_n be_v forge_v and_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o second_o answer_n be_v that_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v urge_v that_o testimony_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n in_o the_o sense_n object_v they_o make_v he_o direct_o repugnant_a to_o himself_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o say_a epistle_n and_o concern_v the_o other_o argument_n by_o our_o say_a canonist_n allege_v of_o the_o death_n of_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n the_o ancient_a father_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n will_v certain_o have_v scorn_v it_o if_o ever_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o it_o peter_n know_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o satan_n have_v possess_v both_o their_o heart_n and_o how_o they_o lie_v not_o to_o man_n but_o to_o god_n do_v only_o pronounce_v that_o sentence_n of_o death_n upon_o they_o which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v suggest_v unto_o he_o wherein_o although_o there_o may_v appear_v what_o force_n the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v when_o it_o be_v brandish_v by_o st._n peter_n through_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o be_v assure_o no_o use_n of_o any_o material_a and_o civil_a sword_n for_o if_o there_o have_v another_o manner_n of_o form_n of_o outward_a justice_n will_v first_o have_v be_v hold_v before_o they_o have_v be_v execute_v and_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n we_o do_v free_o profess_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n be_v thorough_o weigh_v we_o can_v find_v to_o what_o purpose_n either_o st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n shall_v have_v be_v make_v temporal_a monarch_n over_o all_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n in_o the_o world_n because_o all_o their_o temporal_a force_n and_o sword_n join_v together_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o have_v vanquish_v one_o wicked_a spirit_n of_o the_o air_n or_o have_v open_v the_o door_n of_o any_o one_o man_n heart_n for_o christ_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o have_v enter_v and_o have_v make_v their_o habitation_n in_o it_o can._n viii_o if_o therefore_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v otherwise_o commit_v the_o world_n to_o be_v govern_v under_o he_o by_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n but_o so_o as_o he_o himself_o with_o his_o regal_a sceptre_n do_v rule_n and_o govern_v they_o all_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a pleasure_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o sound_a argument_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v temporal_a king_n have_v whole_o pervert_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o behalf_n in_o that_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o justify_v their_o fact_n therein_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o maccabee_n and_o those_o time_n of_o so_o great_a confusion_n or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o be_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n do_v not_o full_o content_v himself_o to_o be_v only_o a_o spiritual_a king_n to_o rule_v in_o man_n heart_n or_o that_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v erect_v such_o a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n he_o do_v not_o conquer_v the_o devil_n sin_n death_n and_o hell_n and_o thereby_o take_v possession_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n or_o that_o before_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v begin_v to_o reign_v in_o man_n heart_n he_o do_v not_o first_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n beget_v a_o lively_a faith_n in_o it_o or_o that_o whilst_o he_o live_v here_o in_o the_o world_n he_o do_v not_o satisfy_v himself_o for_o our_o sake_n with_o a_o very_a mean_a and_o poor_a estate_n be_v in_o himself_o most_o rich_a because_o he_o be_v god_n and_o in_o his_o humanity_n the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n or_o that_o he_o do_v not_o institute_n and_o ordain_v a_o priesthood_n or_o ministry_n to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o continuance_n and_o augment_v of_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n or_o that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o that_o they_o be_v redeem_v through_o faith_n by_o christ_n and_o deliver_v out_o of_o the_o jaw_n of_o hell_n and_o satan_n be_v not_o still_o to_o take_v heed_n and_o beware_v of_o he_o and_o to_o arm_v themselves_o according_o against_o his_o force_n or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n when_o he_o tell_v his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n that_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o above_o his_o lord_n but_o that_o whosoever_o will_v be_v a_o perfect_a disciple_n shall_v be_v as_o his_o master_n do_v not_o mean_a that_o his_o apostle_n and_o after_o they_o their_o successor_n archbishop_n bishop_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ministry_n shall_v hold_v their_o service_n and_o office_n under_o he_o to_o do_v as_o he_o do_v when_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n of_o poor_a estate_n and_o subject_a to_o many_o bad_a usage_n and_o injury_n or_o that_o because_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n when_o he_o be_v become_v a_o man_n immortal_a and_o glorious_a do_v then_o enlarge_v the_o commission_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o ordain_v by_o they_o a_o succession_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n he_o do_v thereby_o make_v they_o any_o more_o partaker_n of_o his_o regal_a authority_n whereof_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v then_o actual_o possess_v for_o the_o state_n and_o exercise_n thereof_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o free_a and_o unrestrained_a operation_n of_o his_o deity_n than_o he_o make_v their_o natural_a and_o corruptible_a body_n incorrupt_a and_o spiritual_a body_n or_o endow_v they_o in_o this_o life_n with_o any_o of_o that_o glory_n power_n and_o heavenly_a estate_n which_o they_o be_v to_o enjoy_v after_o their_o death_n and_o bless_a resurrection_n or_o that_o the_o apostle_n after_o christ_n death_n not_o exempt_n st._n peter_n do_v not_o find_v their_o estate_n in_o this_o world_n very_o suitable_a to_o their_o master_n whilst_o he_o live_v with_o they_o all_o thing_n happen_v unto_o they_o as_o he_o have_v foretell_v they_o or_o that_o either_o st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o their_o successor_n either_o then_o or_o since_o that_o time_n can_v challenge_v so_o much_o as_o this_o or_o that_o one_o temporal_a farm_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a function_n more_o than_o their_o master_n have_v or_o that_o either_o they_o be_v themselves_o possess_v with_o as_o their_o own_o before_o they_o be_v call_v to_o that_o ministration_n or_o than_o be_v afterward_o give_v unto_o they_o by_o godly_a emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o other_o devout_a and_o religious_a person_n or_o that_o if_o st._n peter_n have_v know_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v under_o christ_n the_o sole_a temporal_a monarch_n of_o the_o world_n it_o have_v not_o be_v his_o duty_n to_o have_v make_v the_o same_o know_v at_o least_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o such_o as_o be_v convert_v to_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v have_v honour_v he_o according_o as_o his_o dutiful_a and_o loyal_a subject_n or_o that_o it_o have_v not_o in_o all_o probability_n if_o st._n peter_n mean_v to_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o temporal_a king_n by_o the_o death_n of_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n be_v much_o more_o expedient_a for_o the_o success_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o those_o day_n if_o he_o have_v use_v such_o his_o regal_a authority_n against_o those_o civil_a magistrate_n which_o be_v enemy_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o all_o that_o preach_v in_o his_o name_n or_o that_o it_o may_v be_v right_o imagine_v with_o our_o dutiful_a regard_n of_o st._n peter_n sincerity_n that_o ever_o he_o will_v have_v be_v so_o earnest_a with_o the_o
fault_n what_o the_o cardinal_n friend_n will_v say_v of_o his_o pervert_n the_o apostle_n meaning_n with_o so_o desperate_a a_o exposition_n we_o be_v uncertain_a but_o of_o this_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o estate_n of_o that_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v very_o miserable_a that_o can_v be_v uphold_v without_o so_o apparent_a injury_n do_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o observation_n we_o think_v fit_a to_o make_v in_o this_o place_n because_o he_o once_o have_v past_o the_o bound_n of_o all_o modesty_n or_o rather_o piety_n be_v grow_v to_o that_o presumption_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n against_o the_o truth_n as_o that_o he_o dare_v to_o ground_v another_o of_o his_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n indirect_o to_o depose_v king_n and_o prince_n upon_o these_o word_n speak_v to_o st._n peter_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la feed_v my_o sheep_n touch_v which_o word_n because_o we_o have_v a_o fit_a place_n to_o entreat_v we_o will_v here_o be_v silent_a and_o address_v ourselves_o to_o his_o four_o reason_n as_o idle_a and_o as_o false_a as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n these_o be_v his_o word_n when_o king_n and_o prince_n come_v to_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v christian_n they_o be_v receive_v cum_fw-la pacto_fw-la expresso_fw-la vel_fw-la tacito_fw-la with_o a_o condition_n express_v or_o imply_v without_o any_o mention_n make_v of_o it_o that_o they_o do_v submit_v their_o sceptre_n unto_o christ_n and_o do_v promise_n that_o they_o will_v keep_v and_o defend_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n etiam_fw-la sub_fw-la poenâ_fw-la regni_fw-la perdendi_fw-la even_o under_o pain_n of_o lose_v their_o kingdom_n therefore_o when_o they_o become_v heretic_n or_o do_v hinder_v religion_n they_o may_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o church_n and_o also_o depose_v from_o their_o principality_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o injury_n do_v unto_o they_o if_o they_o be_v depose_v for_o answer_v whereof_o first_o we_o say_v that_o in_o all_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v publish_v we_o can_v learn_v that_o there_o be_v ever_o any_o such_o express_a covenant_n as_o the_o cardinal_n here_o mention_v require_v of_o any_o king_n when_o he_o come_v to_o be_v christen_v baptism_n be_v the_o entrance_n ordain_v by_o christ_n into_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o agreeable_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o kingdom_n all_o who_o be_v thereby_o to_o enter_v into_o it_o of_o what_o call_v or_o condition_n sooner_o they_o be_v as_o well_o poor_a as_o rich_a private_a person_n as_o prince_n be_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o baptism_n practise_v in_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o aught_o that_o be_v know_v to_o the_o contrary_a either_o themselves_o in_o their_o own_o person_n or_o if_o they_o be_v infant_n by_o their_o surety_n to_o profess_v their_o belief_n in_o christ_n and_o to_o promise_v that_o they_o will_v forsake_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o work_n the_o vain_a pomp_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n with_o all_o covetous_a desire_n of_o the_o same_o and_o carnal_a desire_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o they_o do_v constant_o believe_v god_n holy_a word_n and_o that_o they_o will_v keep_v his_o commandment_n the_o wilful_a breach_n of_o any_o of_o which_o point_n and_o perseverance_n in_o it_o without_o repentance_n do_v indeed_o deprive_v every_o christian_a man_n of_o what_o call_v soever_o he_o be_v from_o the_o interest_n he_o have_v by_o his_o say_a profession_n and_o promise_n when_o he_o be_v baptise_a to_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n that_o be_v from_o be_v a_o true_a and_o lively_a member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v but_o that_o any_o man_n by_o the_o breach_n of_o any_o promise_v make_v when_o he_o be_v baptise_a shall_v lose_v that_o which_o he_o gain_v not_o by_o his_o baptism_n or_o that_o the_o church_n do_v never_o receive_v any_o king_n or_o prince_n to_o baptism_n but_o either_o upon_o condition_n in_o express_a term_n or_o by_o implication_n make_v either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o godfather_n that_o he_o will_v submit_v his_o sceptre_n unto_o christ_n that_o be_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o cardinal_n drift_n show_v his_o meaning_n to_o be_v and_o promise_v to_o keep_v and_o defend_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n under_o pain_n of_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v certain_o a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n and_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n but_o be_v utter_o repugnant_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o scripture_n and_o to_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o christian_a baptism_n these_o secret_a intention_n for_o as_o we_o have_v say_v there_o be_v never_o any_o form_n of_o baptism_n that_o contain_v any_o such_o express_a contract_n as_o the_o cardinal_n speak_v of_o mental_a reservation_n and_o hide_a compact_n such_o as_o man_n be_v never_o teach_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o ever_o dream_v of_o or_o suspect_v to_o be_v thrust_v into_o one_o of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n may_v well_o become_v the_o impostor_n of_o rome_n but_o be_v altogether_o contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o holy_a apostle_n in_o who_o day_n he_o that_o believe_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o any_o such_o juggle_n or_o snare_n lay_v to_o hazard_n and_o entangle_v man_n temporal_a estate_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o gospel_n whereof_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v ashamed_a or_o which_o will_v not_o abide_v the_o touchstone_n of_o truth_n if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o that_o do_v not_o promote_v the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v call_v in_o that_o respect_n evangelium_fw-la regni_fw-la the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n now_o whether_o this_o underhand_a bargain_v be_v suitable_a or_o no_o with_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o whether_o if_o it_o have_v be_v know_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o all_o man_n who_o will_v submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o be_v baptize_v do_v thereby_o bind_v themselves_o to_o be_v subject_n and_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o time_n be_v under_o pain_n to_o lose_v all_o their_o worldly_a estate_n the_o knowledge_n thereof_o will_v not_o rather_o have_v hinder_v than_o either_o promote_v or_o further_v the_o good_a success_n of_o the_o gospel_n no_o man_n be_v so_o simple_a but_o he_o may_v easy_o discern_v it_o assure_o the_o grecian_n who_o do_v so_o long_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o authority_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v challenge_v over_o all_o church_n be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o mystical_a point_n of_o baptism_n and_o so_o be_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o many_o age_n or_o else_o there_o will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o great_a stir_n in_o the_o world_n about_o the_o continual_a usurpation_n and_o encroachment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v many_o way_n testify_v by_o sundry_a ecclesiastical_a history_n but_o we_o insist_v too_o long_o upon_o this_o so_o ridiculous_a and_o impudent_a a_o fiction_n and_o therefore_o will_v come_v to_o the_o cardinal_n be_v principal_a reason_n of_o the_o pope_n say_a indirect_a temporal_a authority_n to_o toss_v king_n and_o kingdom_n up_o and_o down_o as_o he_o list_v the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n say_v he_o must_v be_v perfect_a and_o sufficient_a of_o herself_o in_o order_n to_o her_o own_o end_n for_o such_o be_v all_o commonwealth_n that_o be_v well_o institute_v and_o therefore_o she_o ought_v to_o have_v all_o necessary_a power_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o her_o own_o end_n but_o the_o power_n of_o use_v and_o dispose_n of_o temporal_a thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o spiritual_a end_n because_o otherwise_o evil_a prince_n may_v without_o punishment_n nourish_v heretic_n and_o overthrow_v religion_n and_o therefore_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n have_v this_o power_n hitherto_o the_o cardinal_n the_o substance_n of_o who_o argument_n be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n can_v attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n except_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v authority_n to_o dispose_v of_o temporal_a kingdom_n and_o to_o punish_v king_n by_o depose_v they_o from_o their_o crown_n if_o he_o hold_v it_o expedient_a for_o the_o refutation_n of_o which_o vain_a and_o false_a assertion_n there_o be_v very_o many_o most_o direct_a and_o apparent_a argument_n we_o will_v only_o touch_v some_o few_o of_o they_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o his_o day_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n and_o the_o primitive_a
church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 300._o year_n bring_v the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o here_o it_o be_v term_v unto_o her_o spiritual_a end_n as_o direct_o and_o full_o as_o either_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o bishop_n have_v at_o any_o time_n do_v since_o and_o yet_o they_o take_v no_o power_n and_o authority_n upon_o they_o nor_o do_v challenge_v the_o same_o of_o dispose_v of_o temporal_a kingdom_n or_o depose_v of_o prince_n beside_o if_o such_o a_o indirect_a temporal_a power_n be_v so_o necessary_a in_o these_o day_n for_o the_o uphold_v the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o that_o without_o the_o same_o she_o can_v attain_v the_o spiritual_a end_n or_o be_v a_o perfect_a ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n when_o there_o be_v so_o many_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n then_o be_v the_o same_o much_o more_o necessary_a for_o the_o attainment_n of_o the_o same_o end_n in_o the_o say_a time_n of_o christ_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o age_n follow_v for_o 300._o year_n when_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v pagan_n and_o infidel_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n persecutor_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o we_o hope_v we_o may_v be_v bold_a without_o offence_n to_o say_v that_o there_o appear_v then_o no_o such_o necessity_n of_o this_o pretend_a temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n over_o king_n and_o kingdom_n for_o the_o dispose_n of_o they_o and_o that_o nevertheless_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n in_o those_o time_n do_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n and_o be_v as_o perfect_v a_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o it_o be_v now_o under_o the_o pope_n government_n notwithstanding_o all_o his_o temporal_a sovereignty_n wherein_o he_o so_o ruffle_v again_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o it_o can_v be_v show_v out_o of_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n or_o by_o any_o general_a council_n for_o the_o space_n of_o above_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v ever_o imagine_v to_o have_v such_o temporal_a authority_n to_o depose_v king_n as_o now_o be_v maintain_v much_o less_o be_v it_o ever_o dream_v of_o during_o that_o time_n that_o such_o authority_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o attain_v the_o spiritual_a end_n whereunto_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o aim_n or_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n ordain_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n can_v not_o be_v perfect_a without_o it_o it_o be_v a_o miserable_a shift_n if_o any_o shall_v either_o say_v that_o during_o all_o the_o time_n abovementioned_a first_o the_o apostle_n and_o then_o the_o holy_a bishop_n martyr_n and_o father_n after_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o new_a temporal_a power_n or_o at_o least_o do_v not_o so_o thorough_o consider_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o as_o they_o may_v have_v do_v or_o that_o whilst_o they_o live_v there_o can_v indeed_o no_o such_o matter_n be_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o that_o in_o those_o day_n the_o scripture_n have_v not_o receive_v such_o a_o sense_n and_o meaning_n as_o may_v support_v the_o same_o but_o that_o afterward_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v think_v it_o necessary_a to_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o such_o temporal_a authority_n over_o both_o king_n and_o kingdom_n the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v alter_v but_o be_v this_o shift_n never_o so_o wretched_a or_o miserable_a yet_o for_o aught_o we_o perceive_v they_o be_v in_o effect_n and_o still_o will_v be_v both_o in_o this_o cause_n and_o many_o other_o drive_v unto_o it_o the_o scripture_n be_v in_o their_o hand_n a_o very_a rule_n of_o lead_n and_o nose_n of_o wax_n as_o in_o another_o more_o fit_a place_n we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o show_v moreover_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v this_o great_a temporal_a authority_n over_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n to_o preserve_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n here_o upon_o earth_n that_o she_o may_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n assure_o he_o have_v make_v little_a use_n of_o it_o to_o that_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v well_o know_v and_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o for_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n of_o christ_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v flourish_v far_o and_o near_o in_o greece_n thracia_n sclavonia_n hungary_n asia_n minor_fw-la syria_n assyria_n egypt_n and_o throughout_o the_o most_o part_n of_o africa_n where_o there_o be_v many_o very_a worthy_a apostolical_a and_o notable_a church_n in_o the_o most_o of_o which_o place_n there_o be_v scarce_o in_o these_o day_n any_o footstep_n or_o visible_a monument_n of_o they_o and_o although_o afterward_o during_o the_o space_n of_o above_o 700._o year_n much_o mischief_n be_v wrought_v in_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n better_o know_v unto_o we_o than_o the_o rest_n by_o sundry_a sort_n of_o scythian_n and_o northern_a people_n yet_o after_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v most_o vaunt_v of_o this_o their_o sovereign_a power_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n the_o turk_n gain_v and_o encroach_v more_o upon_o christendom_n still_o retain_v that_o which_o they_o then_o have_v so_o get_v than_o at_o any_o time_n before_o whereby_o it_o be_v to_o we_o very_o evident_a that_o neither_o christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n ever_o ordain_v that_o the_o mean_n of_o building_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o conservation_n of_o it_o shall_v consist_v in_o the_o temporal_a power_n or_o authority_n of_o any_o of_o their_o successor_n to_o deprive_v emperor_n or_o king_n from_o their_o imperial_a or_o regal_a estate_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v ashamed_a that_o have_v have_v so_o great_a authority_n in_o their_o own_o hand_n extort_a from_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n per_fw-la fas_fw-la &_o nefas_fw-la since_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n time_n they_o have_v make_v no_o better_a use_n of_o it_o but_o suffer_v so_o many_o famous_a country_n and_o kingdom_n to_o be_v utter_o overrun_v and_o waste_v by_o pagan_n and_o infidel_n consider_v that_o they_o pretend_v themselves_o to_o have_v so_o great_a a_o authority_n for_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o only_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o she_o may_v not_o be_v prevent_v of_o her_o spiritual_a end_n but_o what_o shall_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o shame_n of_o rome_n who_o forehead_n have_v be_v so_o long_o since_o harden_v or_o ever_o imagine_v that_o almighty_a god_n either_o do_v or_o will_v bless_v her_o usurpation_n and_o insolence_n against_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n for_o any_o good_a to_o his_o church_n other_o than_o must_v accrue_v unto_o she_o through_o her_o persecution_n and_o affliction_n for_o it_o be_v no_o great_a labour_n to_o make_v it_o most_o apparent_a by_o very_a many_o history_n if_o we_o will_v insist_v upon_o it_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o strive_v first_o to_o get_v and_o then_o to_o uphold_v after_o their_o scramble_a manner_n this_o their_o wicked_a and_o usurp_a authority_n of_o trouble_v and_o vex_v christian_n kingdom_n and_o state_n with_o their_o manifold_a oppression_n and_o quarrel_n have_v be_v some_o special_a mean_n whereupon_o the_o saracen_n turk_n and_o pagan_n have_v wrought_v and_o by_o degree_n bring_v so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o christendom_n under_o their_o slavery_n as_o now_o they_o be_v possess_v of_o for_o it_o be_v but_o a_o idle_a and_o a_o vain_a pretence_n that_o the_o preservation_n of_o as_o much_o of_o christendom_n as_o be_v yet_o free_a from_o the_o turk_n and_o paganism_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o authority_n that_o so_o the_o catholic_n church_n may_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o plant_n of_o church_n and_o conservation_n of_o they_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a to_o as_o many_o as_o have_v any_o wit_n experience_n and_o sound_a judgement_n that_o as_o the_o very_a situation_n of_o the_o say_a country_n which_o now_o pagan_n enjoy_v make_v they_o very_o subject_a unto_o the_o incursion_n and_o invasion_n of_o saracen_n and_o turk_n god_n himself_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n have_v his_o finger_n and_o just_a operation_n therein_o so_o through_o his_o most_o merciful_a goodness_n and_o care_n of_o his_o church_n he_o bless_v the_o situation_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o christendom_n be_v now_o free_a in_o that_o respect_n from_o those_o kind_n of_o violence_n and_o endow_v the_o heart_n of_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n with_o such_o courage_n and_o constancy_n in_o defence_n of_o christianity_n and_o of_o their_o kingdom_n as_o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v great_o vex_v they_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n they_o do_v mighty_o repel_v the_o force_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o most_o religious_o uphold_v and_o maintain_v the_o
episcopi_fw-la quasi_fw-la cardinal_n archiepiscopus_fw-la sederet_fw-la quasi_fw-la papa_n &_o ibi_fw-la omnis_fw-la appellatio_fw-la subsisteret_fw-la &_o querela_fw-la hoc_fw-la quidem_fw-la rex_fw-la henricus_fw-la machinabatur_fw-la approbant_fw-la quamplures_fw-la episcopi_fw-la hâc_fw-la de_fw-la causâ_fw-la ut_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la possent_fw-la de_fw-la sub_fw-la jugo_fw-la sanctae_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la colla_fw-la excutere_fw-la now_o the_o build_n of_o the_o say_a church_n be_v so_o forward_o that_o there_o be_v ordain_v there_o a_o dean_n a_o provost_n and_o more_o than_o 40._o canon_n found_v of_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n by_o birth_n nobleman_n abound_v in_o wealth_n ally_n of_o the_o king_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n some_o of_o they_o do_v adhere_v to_o the_o king_n some_o have_v office_n in_o the_o exchequer_n all_o of_o they_o familiar_a friend_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o of_o a_o confederacy_n with_o they_o against_o such_o and_o so_o great_a person_n what_o be_v the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n able_a to_o do_v certain_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v not_o only_o that_o the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n shall_v hereby_o be_v overthrow_v but_o that_o upon_o this_o occasion_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v which_o god_n forbid_v shall_v in_o england_n be_v great_o diminish_v und_fw-ge prejudice_v for_o when_o this_o canonry_n or_o cathedral_n church_n be_v found_v it_o be_v the_o common_a fame_n and_o the_o opinion_n of_o every_o man_n that_o it_o be_v found_v to_o this_o end_n that_o bishop_n shall_v be_v there_o as_o it_o be_v cardinal_n and_o that_o the_o archbishop_n shall_v sit_v among_o they_o as_o pope_n and_o that_o there_o all_o appeal_n and_o complaint_n shall_v be_v determine_v this_o assure_o be_v plot_v by_o king_n henry_n and_o the_o same_o very_a many_o bishop_n do_v allow_v for_o this_o cause_n or_o end_n that_o so_o they_o may_v deliver_v their_o neck_n from_o under_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n again_o after_o the_o death_n of_o celestin_n the_o four_o the_o cardinal_n be_v at_o so_o great_a a_o dissension_n among_o themselves_o as_o that_o they_o can_v not_o agree_v for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o year_n and_o nine_o month_n who_o shall_v succeed_v he_o both_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o french_a be_v great_o move_v and_o offend_v therewith_o the_o emperor_n find_v his_o advice_n unto_o they_o to_o hasten_v their_o choice_n to_o be_v despise_v and_o scorn_v and_o how_o dishonest_o some_o of_o they_o have_v break_v their_o promise_n and_o oath_n unto_o he_o make_v in_o that_o behalf_n he_o gather_v a_o great_a host_n and_o deal_v sharp_o with_o they_o and_o from_o france_n they_o receive_v a_o message_n that_o if_o they_o continue_v to_o dally_v as_o they_o do_v in_o prolong_v the_o choice_n of_o a_o new_a pope_n they_o will_v utter_o leave_v rome_n and_o choose_v to_o themselves_o a_o pope_n of_o their_o own_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n on_o this_o side_n the_o alps._n hereof_o matthew_n paris_n write_v thus_o 1243._o per_fw-la idem_fw-la tempus_fw-la miserunt_fw-la franci_n solennes_n nuncios_fw-la ad_fw-la curiam_fw-la romanam_fw-la significantes_fw-la persuadendo_fw-la praecisè_fw-la &_o efficaciter_fw-la ut_fw-la ipsi_fw-la cardinal_n papam_fw-la ritè_fw-la eligentes_fw-la vniversali_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la solatium_fw-la pastorale_n maturiùs_fw-la providerent_fw-la vel_fw-la ipsi_fw-la franci_n propter_fw-la negligentiam_fw-la eorum_fw-la de_fw-la sibi_fw-la eligendo_fw-la &_o providendo_fw-la summo_fw-la pontifice_fw-la citra_fw-la montes_n cui_fw-la obedire_fw-la tenerentur_fw-la quantocyùs_fw-la contrectarent_fw-la about_o that_o time_n the_o state_n of_o france_n do_v send_v their_o solemn_a messenger_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n signify_v unto_o they_o and_o persuade_v they_o precise_o and_o effectual_o that_o either_o the_o cardinal_n shall_v more_o speedy_o provide_v for_o the_o universal_a church_n her_o pastoral_a comfort_n by_o their_o due_a choice_n of_o a_o new_a pope_n or_o else_o they_o themselves_o the_o french_a because_o of_o their_o negligence_n will_v forthwith_o fall_v into_o deliberation_n of_o choose_v and_o provide_v for_o themselves_o a_o pope_n on_o this_o side_n the_o mountain_n who_o they_o may_v be_v bind_v to_o obey_v thus_o the_o say_a history_n whereby_o as_o also_o by_o the_o former_a word_n of_o the_o monk_n of_o canterbury_n it_o be_v very_o evident_a that_o both_o england_n and_o france_n be_v long_o since_o in_o deliberation_n to_o have_v abandon_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n out_o of_o both_o those_o kingdom_n as_o find_v no_o necessity_n of_o the_o universal_a overswaying_a power_n of_o the_o roman_a papacy_n and_o that_o the_o church_n within_o their_o several_a country_n and_o territory_n may_v receive_v as_o great_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n of_o their_o own_o archbishop_n in_o every_o respect_n as_o ever_o they_o have_v do_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o as_o it_o may_v true_o be_v say_v not_o of_o one_o king_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n but_o of_o every_o particular_a king_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n so_o may_v it_o be_v true_o affirm_v not_o of_o one_o pope_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n but_o of_o every_o archbishop_n in_o any_o national_a church_n and_o province_n to_o rule_v and_o direct_v the_o same_o that_o under_o the_o government_n of_o one_o viz._n of_o king_n for_o temporal_a cause_n and_o of_o archbishop_n for_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n there_o be_v the_o best_a order_n the_o great_a strength_n the_o most_o stability_n for_o continuance_n and_o the_o easy_a manner_n and_o form_n of_o rule_v we_o have_v speak_v hitherto_o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o afterward_o for_o the_o space_n of_o 300._o year_n when_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v enemy_n unto_o it_o whereby_o we_o do_v infer_v that_o if_o the_o particular_a church_n settle_v then_o almost_o in_o every_o country_n and_o nation_n throughout_o the_o world_n have_v so_o good_a success_n when_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a magistrate_n nor_o have_v any_o assistance_n of_o the_o temporal_a sword_n for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a government_n but_o only_a minister_n to_o teach_v and_o direct_v their_o parishioner_n in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n and_o bishop_n over_o they_o in_o every_o diocese_n to_o oversee_v and_o rule_v as_o well_o the_o minister_n as_o the_o several_a people_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n that_o they_o teach_v no_o new_a doctrine_n or_o run_v into_o schism_n and_o archbishop_n over_o they_o all_o in_o every_o national_a church_n and_o province_n for_o the_o moderate_n and_o appease_v of_o such_o opposition_n and_o dissension_n as_o may_v otherwise_o have_v rise_v among_o the_o bishop_n and_o so_o consequent_o have_v wrought_v great_a distraction_n betwixt_o their_o diocesan_n church_n how_o much_o more_o than_o be_v the_o say_v particular_a church_n like_o to_o flourish_v and_o prosper_v under_o such_o a_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n wherein_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n be_v become_v to_o be_v as_o the_o chief_a member_n of_o the_o church_n so_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o it_o to_o keep_v as_o well_o the_o say_a archbishop_n within_o their_o bound_n and_o limit_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o christian_n bishop_n minister_n and_o parishioner_n that_o every_o one_o in_o their_o several_a place_n may_v execute_v and_o discharge_v their_o distinct_a office_n and_o duty_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o we_o shall_v have_v fit_a occasion_n hereafter_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o christian_a prince_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a here_o we_o do_v only_o still_o prosecute_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n when_o temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n be_v she_o great_a and_o mortal_a enemy_n and_o the_o folly_n if_o not_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o our_o adversary_n who_o either_o see_v it_o not_o or_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o that_o peace_n and_o quietness_n may_v as_o well_o be_v preserve_v in_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n by_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n without_o one_o pope_n to_o govern_v they_o all_o as_o by_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n in_o all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o temporal_a government_n in_o the_o world_n without_o one_o temporal_a monarch_n to_o rule_v and_o oversway_v they_o for_o our_o adversary_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o it_o may_v be_v ascribe_v as_o we_o have_v before_o say_v more_o to_o any_o want_n of_o discretion_n and_o due_a providence_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o he_o have_v not_o appoint_v the_o pope_n to_o govern_v the_o catholic_n church_n than_o that_o he_o have_v not_o assign_v the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o one_o king_n or_o emperor_n rather_o it_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o their_o audacious_a temerity_n and_o presumption_n that_o will_v either_o enforce_v
and_o throw_v down_o and_o build_v and_o plant_v and_o a_o little_a after_o you_o see_v who_o be_v this_o servant_n even_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n the_o successor_n of_o peter_n the_o christ_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o god_n of_o pharaoh_n one_o place_v in_o the_o midst_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n short_a of_o god_n but_o beyond_o man_n less_o than_o god_n but_o great_a than_o man._n likewise_o from_o st._n peter_n walk_v on_o the_o water_n 2._o he_o make_v this_o inference_n forasmuch_o say_v he_o as_o many_o water_n be_v many_o people_n and_o the_o congregation_n of_o water_n be_v the_o sea_n in_o that_o st._n peter_n do_v walk_v upon_o the_o water_n of_o the_o sea_n he_o do_v demonstrate_v his_o power_n over_o all_o the_o world_n further_o this_o innocentius_n have_v write_v a_o malapert_a letter_n to_o the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n p._n his_o majesty_n in_o answer_n of_o it_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n how_o st._n peter_n command_v all_o man_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o king_n whereunto_o the_o pope_n reply_v say_v that_o st._n peter_n write_v so_o to_o his_o own_o subject_n and_o do_v not_o therein_o include_v himself_o and_o that_o moreover_o he_o may_v not_o only_o have_v remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o say_v to_o any_o king_n but_o to_o a_o priest_n behold_v i_o have_v place_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n and_o so_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n but_o likewise_o that_o as_o god_n make_v two_o light_n in_o the_o firmament_n of_o heaven_n a_o great_a and_o a_o less_o the_o one_o for_o the_o day_n the_o other_o for_o the_o night_n so_o for_o the_o firmament_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n he_o make_v two_o dignity_n the_o pontifical_a and_o the_o regal_a the_o pontifical_a resemble_v the_o sun_n which_o be_v the_o great_a light_n and_o the_o regal_a the_o moon_n which_o be_v the_o less_o light_a to_o the_o end_n that_o thereby_o it_o may_v be_v know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o pontifical_a bishop_n and_o king_n as_o there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n but_o here_o we_o must_v a_o little_a digress_v johan_n to_o observe_v that_o this_o pope_n be_v swell_v as_o big_a as_o the_o sun_n cast_v his_o beam_n not_o only_o into_o england_n and_o scorch_a king_n john_n exceed_o about_o the_o year_n 1212._o by_o thunder_a against_o he_o uspergensi_fw-la and_o interdict_v the_o kingdom_n and_o by_o exciting_a his_o subject_n to_o rebellion_n and_o treason_n the_o weapon_n of_o those_o bishop_n but_o likewise_o fire_v otho_n the_o emperor_n out_o of_o the_o empire_n chronol_n by_o raise_v up_o against_o he_o frederick_n the_o second_o 3._o and_o when_o he_o have_v play_v these_o two_o feat_n among_o many_o other_o he_o hold_v a_o council_n at_o lateran_n anno_fw-la 1215._o whereinis_fw-la to_o strengthen_v such_o traitorous_a proceed_n he_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v ordain_v as_o it_o be_v pretend_v that_o if_o any_o temporal_a lord_n 1._o be_v admonish_v by_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o purge_v his_o country_n from_o heresy_n the_o metropolitan_a and_o other_o comprovincial_a bishop_n shall_v excommunicate_v he_o and_o if_o within_o a_o year_n he_o do_v not_o give_v satisfaction_n in_o that_o behalf_n the_o same_o shall_v be_v signify_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o so_o he_o from_o thence_o forward_o may_v denounce_v his_o vassal_n absolve_v from_o their_o fidelity_n to_o he_o and_o expose_v his_o land_n to_o catholic_n to_o be_v without_o contradiction_n by_o they_o possess_v upon_o this_o canon_n many_o in_o these_o day_n do_v much_o rely_v although_o indeed_o it_o be_v but_o a_o project_n among_o many_o other_o to_o have_v be_v conclude_v in_o that_o assembly_n wherein_o nothing_o can_v be_v clear_o determine_v say_v one_o of_o their_o writer_n because_o by_o war_n it_o be_v break_v off_o 3._o which_o the_o pope_n labour_v to_o suppress_v die_v in_o that_o journey_n and_o now_o we_o return_v from_o whence_o we_o digress_v and_o leave_v innocentius_n do_v address_v ourselves_o to_o boniface_n the_o eight_o who_o have_v as_o great_a dexterity_n as_o his_o say_a predecessor_n in_o expound_v of_o the_o scripture_n for_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n upon_o a_o mistake_n of_o christ_n meaning_n sanctam_fw-la where_o he_o bid_v they_o to_o provide_v bag_n and_o scrip_n for_o themselves_o and_o that_o he_o who_o want_v a_o sword_n shall_v sell_v his_o coat_n 38._o and_o buy_v one_o they_o answer_v say_v lord_n we_o have_v two_o sword_n this_o pope_n infer_v there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n a_o spiritual_a sword_n and_o a_o temporal_a and_o that_o consequent_o they_o be_v both_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n also_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n more_o clear_a touch_v the_o temporal_a sword_n which_o shall_v rule_v the_o world_n in_o all_o temporal_a cause_n he_o say_v boniface_n that_o shall_v deny_v that_o st._n peter_n have_v this_o temporal_a sword_n do_v not_o well_o understand_v christ_n word_n when_o he_o bid_v st._n peter_n after_o he_o have_v cut_v off_o malchus_n ear_n that_o he_o shall_v put_v up_o his_o sword_n 15._o again_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n but_o be_v judge_v by_o none_o this_o good_a bishop_n do_v engross_v these_o word_n to_o the_o only_a use_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o thereupon_o conclude_v that_o they_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v and_o censure_v all_o earthly_a power_n and_o authority_n but_o be_v themselves_o exempt_v from_o the_o check_n and_o censure_n of_o any_o as_o be_v only_a subject_n to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o judgement_n and_o again_o that_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n may_v institute_v and_o judge_v the_o terrestrial_a it_o be_v verify_v by_o the_o prophecy_n of_o jeremy_n behold_v i_o have_v place_v thou_o this_o day_n over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n for_o the_o pervert_n of_o which_o portion_n of_o scripture_n both_o this_o pope_n and_o innocentius_n the_o three_o with_o all_o the_o pope_n that_o since_o have_v follow_v be_v and_o be_v much_o behold_v to_o adrian_n the_o four_o 6._o he_o be_v the_o first_o for_o aught_o we_o find_v that_o so_o do_v overstrain_v it_o last_o that_o he_o may_v imitate_v as_o he_o seem_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n in_o the_o gospel_n 2._o that_o bring_v forth_o his_o best_a wine_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o feast_n and_o likewise_o such_o skilful_a rhetorician_n as_o common_o build_v their_o principal_a conclusion_n upon_o their_o most_o pinch_a argument_n his_o holiness_n rely_v upon_o the_o scripture_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v not_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n but_o in_o the_o beginning_n god_n make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n therefore_o except_o we_o will_v say_v with_o the_o manichce_n that_o god_n do_v not_o himself_o make_v all_o thing_n but_o that_o there_o be_v also_o another_o creator_n as_o well_o as_o he_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o viz._n st._n peter_n successor_n that_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o principal_a ruler_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o so_o he_o come_v to_o his_o irrefragable_a conclusion_n we_o declare_v we_o define_v and_o we_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n for_o all_o humane_a creature_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n we_o may_v not_o therefore_o marvel_v that_o have_v thus_o notable_o make_v perfect_a the_o rough_a platform_n draw_v out_o by_o gregory_n the_o viith_o rub_v over_o by_o hadrian_n the_o ivth_o and_o amend_v by_o innocentius_n the_o iiid_n of_o so_o infinite_a a_o sovereignty_n if_o he_o the_o say_v boniface_n to_o make_v the_o honour_n and_o glory_n more_o conspicuous_a and_o memorable_a to_o all_o posterity_n after_o he_o have_v thrice_o refuse_v to_o yield_v the_o crown_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o albertus_n austriacus_n come_v forth_o one_o day_n among_o the_o people_n to_o be_v admire_v of_o they_o with_o a_o sword_n by_o his_o side_n 18._o and_o a_o crown_n upon_o his_o head_n say_v that_o he_o and_o none_o but_o he_o be_v caesar_n augustus_n emperor_n and_o lord_n of_o the_o world_n it_o have_v be_v plain_a deal_n if_o for_o the_o better_a strengthen_n of_o this_o his_o greatness_n he_o have_v allege_v the_o word_n in_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o lord_n paramount_n 9_o all_o these_o will_v i_o give_v thou_o because_o he_o do_v so_o worthy_o by_o his_o say_a proceed_n magnify_v his_o name_n and_o authority_n placet_fw-la eye_n john_n overall_n cap._n x._o we_o have_v hitherto_o follow_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n through_o many_o wind_n from_o their_o mean_a and_o militant_a condition_n like_v to_o their_o brethren_n unto_o their_o glorious_a estate_n and_o as_o we_o may_v say_v triumphant_a we_o find_v they_o at_o the_o first_o little_o better_a than_o their_o master_n who_o